How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business : an Insider Guide to

HOW TO SET UP A
FREELANCE
WRITING
BUSINESS
Other related titles from How To Books
Touch Type in Ten Hours
Spend a few hours now and gain a valuable skill for life
How To Start and Run an Internet Business
How to Write for Television
A guide to writing and selling successful TV scripts
How to Research the History of Your House
Every home tells a story . . .
Starting Your Own Business
The bestselling guide to planning and building a successful enterprise
The Five-minute Writer
Exercise and inspiration in creative writing – in five minutes a day
Writing for Magazines
How to get your work published in newspapers and magazines
Book-keeping and Accounting for the Small Business
85 Inspiring ways to Market Your Small Business
Preparing a Winning Business Plan
For full details, please send for a free copy of the
latest catalogue to:
How To Books
Spring Hill House, Spring Hill Road, Begbroke
Oxford OX5 1RX, United Kingdom
info@howtobooks.co.uk
www.howtobooks.co.uk
HOW TO SET UP A
FREELANCE
WRITING
BUSINESS
An Insider Guide to setting up and running
your own copywriting business
JASON DEIGN
howtobooks
For ГЃine
Published by How To Content,
A division of How To Books Ltd,
Spring Hill House, Spring Hill Road, Begbroke
Oxford OX5 1RX, United Kingdom.
Tel: (01865) 375794. Fax: (01865) 379162.
info@howtobooks.co.uk
www.howtobooks.co.uk
The right of Jason Deign to be identified as author of this work has been asserted
by him in accordance with the Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988.
All rights reserved. No part of this work may be reproduced or stored in an
information retrieval system (other than for purposes of review), without the
express permission of the publisher in writing.
В© 2008 Jason Deign
First edition 2003
Second edition 2008
First published in electronic form 2008
ISBN: 978 1 84803 254 5
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data.
A catalogue record for this book is available from the British Library.
Cover design by Baseline Arts Ltd, Oxford
Produced for How To Books by Deer Park Productions, Tavistock, Devon
Typeset by Kestrel Data, Exeter, Devon
NOTE: The material contained in this book is set out in good faith for general
guidance and no liability can be accepted for loss or expense incurred as a result of
relying in particular circumstances on statements made in the book. Laws
and regulations are complex and liable to change, and readers should check
the current position with the relevant authorities before making personal
arrangements.
Contents
xi
xiii
xv
Acknowledgements
Preface
Note from the Author
PART 1: YOUR BUSINESS
1
1
3
2
3
4
Why Become a Copywriter?
What is copywriting?
The right qualities
Running your own business
Earnings
3
7
11
13
Getting Started
15
The good news
The basics
What sort of business?
Other considerations
What you absolutely have to do
15
16
19
22
25
Getting Kitted Out
27
What you need to get going
Your computer
Software
Internet access
Computer peripherals
Other equipment
Furniture
Vehicles
27
28
31
34
36
38
40
41
Where to Work
42
Your options
Working from home
Working in an office
Working from client premises
42
42
46
49
v
vi / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
5
6
7
Book Keeping for Copywriters
53
Where do you start?
How do accounts work?
Your financial year
Receipts
Invoices
Managing cash flow
Choosing an accountant
Filing your own tax returns
National Insurance
VAT
53
54
57
57
63
65
67
68
69
69
How to Find Work – and Keep It
72
Sources of income
Networking
Advertising and promotion
Finding work on the web
Working through agencies
Drumming up business over the phone
Pitching, impressing, winning and pricing
Ensuring repeat business
72
73
73
74
79
79
80
86
Getting Help
87
Don’t be alarmed!
Lawyers and legal matters
Professional bodies
Working with other freelancers
Training
Finding information
87
87
88
90
91
92
PART 2: YOUR WRITING
95
8
97
Delivering Great Copy
What makes great copy?
Keep it short
Keep it simple
Keep it interesting
Keep it relevant
97
98
100
102
104
Contents / vii
Keep it active
Keep it honest
Finding inspiration
How to present copy
9
Things to Watch Out For
Respect the language
Abbreviations
Apostrophes
Capital letters in names
Collective nouns
Exclamation marks
Jargon
Repetition
Use of italics, bold or upper case type
Words to watch out for
US or UK English?
Avoid clichГ©s
10 Writing for Advertising
Before we start
What does advertising do?
Using creativity to sell
Benefits and USPs
Maximum impact, minimum copy
Thinking in words and pictures
Getting a response
Writing for different media
11 Writing for Direct Mail
The basics
Selling by mail
The importance of targeting
Being creative
Clinching the deal
Some golden rules for DM copywriters
Consumer and business-to-business audiences
Email marketing
106
107
110
112
113
113
115
116
117
118
119
119
121
122
122
124
124
126
126
126
129
131
132
133
134
134
140
140
141
141
142
144
145
146
147
viii / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
12 Writing for Internal Communications
What is internal communications?
Processes involved in internal communications programmes
Striking the right tone
Dealing with approvals
Creating and maintaining a style guide
Human interest and business stories
Managing internal communications programmes
13 Writing for the internet
A short history of the internet
The basics of web copy
The appearance of text
Thinking in hypertext
Words to watch out for
Other essential information
14 Writing for the Press
A major market
The principles of journalism
The editorial process
Sources of information
Writing news
Writing features
Headlines and captions
Writing to length
Writing for newspapers, magazines, contract publishers and news wires
Pitching ideas
15 Writing for Public Relations
The difference between journalism and PR
How PR works
Giving journalists the basis of a story
Writing a damn good press release
Key messages
When not to write press releases
Other types of press material
16 Writing for Sales and Sales Promotion
Types of sales copy
151
151
152
154
155
156
158
160
164
164
166
169
171
172
173
177
177
178
180
181
183
183
185
187
187
189
191
191
192
194
194
198
199
199
203
203
Contents / ix
Brochures
Leaflets, flyers and posters
Point-of-sale materials
On-pack
Media packs
Case studies
White papers
Dealing with sales people
Working with designers
203
204
205
205
206
206
206
207
208
17 Writing for Other Media
209
An infinite variety
Blurbs
Business plans
Manuals and technical documents
Presentations
Speech writing
Video scripts
Other types of writing
18 Beyond Copywriting
Where next?
Sticking to your guns
Consultancy
Marketing
Brand and corporate identity
Setting up your own agency
Creative writing
Sources and References
Index
209
210
211
213
214
216
218
220
221
221
221
222
223
223
224
224
226
235
This page intentionally left blank
Acknowledgements
Several people contributed their experience and knowledge to make sure this
book was a far better volume than it could otherwise have been. Julian
Goldsmith, for example, provided valuable input into the section on serviced
offices. Gareth Llewellyn allowed me to share his cash flow nightmares with
readers. Anne Massey of The Editorial Consultancy gave me masses of help
with Chapter 11; any and all useful advice in that chapter is entirely thanks
to her unparalleled knowledge of direct marketing. Sion Portman took time
out from being one of the hottest web producers in the UK to review
Chapter 13. Mike Stone’s input was invaluable in drafting Chapter 10, and
any remaining shortcomings in that section of the book are purely because I
was not able to make all the changes he suggested. Tanya Stratton, in
particular, deserves a massive thank you for casting her expert eye over
Chapters 2 and 5 and the section on IR35 in Chapter 4. All their input into
this book highlights a point that I may not have made enough of elsewhere:
no matter how much you think you know about a subject, it is always best
to get a real expert to check your material.
Finally, I would also like to thank the people at Pfizer Consumer
Healthcare for letting me use their ad in Chapter 10, and Jutta Degener for
the �dangerous words’ in Chapter 13.
xi
This page intentionally left blank
Preface
This book is aimed at anyone who fancies making money from writing –
whether on a part-time basis, as a stop-gap measure between jobs, or as a
full-time career. No matter which of the above categories you fall into, if
you are going to go it alone you will need to know the basics of running a
business – or risk the wrath of the taxman, at the very least.
Besides knowing the basics of your trade – in other words, how to write
well for the audiences you will be addressing – being successful and making
money depends on winning business and keeping clients happy, so I have
devoted specific sections of the book to this topic.
Core elements of this book will also, I hope, be useful to people who
wish to earn money from writing but do not intend to run their own
business. The rules of good writing that I have set out in the second part of
the book apply just as much to in-house or agency copywriting as they do to
freelance practitioners. Furthermore, in my experience – and that of
colleagues in the trade – it is highly likely that even the most sought-after
copywriting employee may have to make do on their own from time to
time, for example as a way of getting onto the first rung of the employment
ladder, overcoming periods of unemployment, supplementing income,
breaking into new fields and so on.
Lastly, there may be many people in the creative, marketing and
media-related industries who would not consider themselves copywriters but
who, I believe, might find elements of this book useful. For people in the
public relations industry, for example, I have included information – drawn
from both a PR and journalist’s perspectives – on how to write press
releases, backgrounders and other materials. Web designers might like to
take note of my tips on writing for the internet if they are asked to provide
copy for the sites they produce. For in-house marketers charged with
overseeing internal communications, there are details on how to put
together house style guides, packaging corporate messages and so on.
xiii
xiv / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
What this book cannot do is cover in detail all the writing techniques and
processes in major marketing and media industries such as advertising, direct
mail, public relations or journalism. What I have tried to do, instead, is
provide some background and some basic tips that will help the novice
writer approach projects in these fields. Each of these subjects has been
written about by experts far more qualified in their fields than I am and,
where possible, I have listed their works in this text for those who wish to
delve further.
The first section of this book – up to Chapter 8 – is about the essentials of
running a copywriting business. It covers getting started, what equipment you
need, how to decide where you should work, what you need to do to keep on top of
your accounts and, crucially, how to find work and keep it. If you do not intend
to set up in business and instead are using this book as a source of reference on
copywriting, then you can skip this section and go straight to Chapter 8.
Chapter 8 is the most important chapter in this book. It deals
with the basic skills and knowledge you need to apply to
become a successful copywriter.
Chapter 8 onwards is about copywriting itself: what you need to know to
write good copy and how you can adapt your style to suit different types of work,
from advertising to sales promotion. Finally, at the end of the book, from
Chapter 17, there is additional information for practising copywriters. It
covers less common types of copywriting work, such as speeches and technical
documents, and how you can extend your business into related areas such as
marketing and communications consultancy.
Information in some chapters, such as those covering taxation and the
cost of equipment, is subject to change. While I have made every effort
to make sure details are accurate at the time of going to press, do take
care to ensure you get the latest facts from the sources listed
at the end of this book and elsewhere.
Note from the Author
In 1996 I gave up my full-time job working in a public relations agency to
start my own business as a copywriter.
In the years that followed, my work has been more diverse, interesting,
satisfying and rewarding than ever before. Since I am my own boss, I no longer
have to worry about making the right moves to secure promotion, getting
recognised and rewarded for my efforts, or even losing my job in the event of a
downturn. I have also seen many colleagues follow the same route – some for
good, some for a short time to tide them over between full-time posts.
A number of these people asked me for advice on matters ranging from
bookkeeping or finding business to working from home and buying
equipment. I have always been happy to oblige because, unlike the
cut-throat competitiveness of some corporate or agency environments, there
is a great camaraderie in the world of freelance copywriting. This is hardly
surprising. As I mention in Chapter 1, getting on with people is almost a
prerequisite to surviving as an independent copywriter, and it pays to have
an informal network among whom to share work if there is a glut.
Furthermore, surviving on your own, with nothing but your creativity,
writing skill and possibly a few contacts, is a daunting affair to say the least,
so talking to people who have done it or are intending to do it can be a
great morale booster.
Offering advice and giving confidence to a wider range of people was one
of the reasons I decided to write this book. There is another, though, that
makes up for the fact that I could be doing myself out of business by passing
on the tips of the trade. It is that, even in this age of marketing supremacy, I
believe the value of good copy is still understated – and often because
copywriters themselves are unable to sell the worth of their work articulately.
The result is that copywriting is often seen as a job anyone can do (true,
up to a point) regardless of their experience, talent or training (untrue).
Consequently, a lot of marketing copy is badly written, perpetuating the
xv
xvi / How to Set Up a Freelance Business
myth that it cannot be worth much. There is a great deal of evidence to
show the contrary (which I shall not go into in this book, although some of
it can be found in the reference works quoted and much of it, in any case,
may be self-evident), but the need for a more professional approach
nevertheless remains. In this book I have made a conscious effort to remind
copywriters of how they can ensure their work meets consistently high
standards and their decisions can be justified according to basic principles of
language, grammar and communications effectiveness. I have also indicated
where it is worth putting your writing ethics aside and making compromises
for the sake of your business relationship with clients; you do, after all, need
to make a living.
I therefore hope this book will give existing and would-be copywriters the
tools and confidence to strike out on their own and to provide a service
which can be shown to yield results for clients, increasing both the perceived
value of the writer and that of professionally produced communications in
general.
One caution before we go on. While I have had valuable input from a
number of sources in compiling this book, it remains predominantly
based on my own experience. My way of doing things has worked for
me and for my clients over the years, but that does not mean you may
necessarily agree with all the points I will make in the pages to follow.
That’s fine. One great thing about copywriting is that you never stop
learning. You pick up new information all the time, which you can
either incorporate into your own working methods or discard. If you
feel that at least a small part of what I have to say is useful and
helpful, then I will consider this work a success. Drop me an email, at
the address at the end of this book, and let me know. Let me know
also if there are any points you disagree with – and what your
own point of view is. I am still learning too, after all.
Jason Deign
Part One
YOUR BUSINESS
This page intentionally left blank
1
Why Become a Copywriter?
1. What is copywriting?
Imagine a job where you earn good money for your creativity and your
ideas. Where you create wealth from nothing, using just the power of your
imagination and a flair for prose. Where you work the hours you want,
anywhere you want. Where you choose whom you work for – and how
much you get paid.
If this sounds like the kind of work only a musician or novelist could
aspire to, think again. Thousands of people enjoy just such a lifestyle – as
freelance copywriters, the hired guns that create the commercial messages
that make up much of the fabric of our everyday environment.
Throughout this book I use the terms �freelance’ and �independent’
interchangeably to indicate someone who runs their
own copywriting business.
Every word in an advert, brochure, leaflet or mail shot has to be written
by someone, somewhere. Many more are penned by people who work in
publishing – not just for papers and magazines, but also on websites,
company newsletters and elsewhere. They, in turn, often rely on information
written by public relations agencies and departments.
And virtually every one of these words is paid for. Several thousand
people in the UK earn a living from writing commercial material. Some do it
in-house, as part of marketing or communications departments within large
companies. Some work in advertising, direct mail, new media or public
3
4 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
relations agencies. Some do it part-time as part of a wider role. And many
ply their trade independently, working where, when, how and for whom
they want.
Copywriting, not copyrighting
�Copy’ is a term used in the press and advertising industries to mean �text’,
so �copywriting’ refers to the business of providing written words for these
and other commercial activities. It is not to be confused with �copyright’,
which is a legal discipline concerned with the right of an author not to have
their work copied without consent and/or payment. Because of the nature
of their work, copywriters often need to know a bit about copyright –
although not vice versa!
A short history of ad copywriting
The advertising copywriter’s trade can be traced back to ancient times, when
public criers circulated through the streets calling attention to the sale of
items such as slaves and cattle. Advertisements began to appear in the
seventeenth century, for products such as coffee (1652) and chocolate
(1657). In the early twentieth century, ad agencies, which up till then had
simply been brokers for space in newspapers, became involved in producing
commercial messages, including copy and art work. Commercial television
reached the UK in 1955; the first TV ad in the country was for Gibb’s SR
toothpaste.
Breaking into the field
Breaking into this field is not as difficult as you might think. Few of those
who specialise in copywriting have any formal training. Some, frankly, are
not even particularly good. So if you have ever read an advert, brochure or
mail shot and thought you could do better, the chances are you could be
right – and you could earn good money into the bargain.
Why Become a Copywriter? / 5
Markets
The commercial market for words is massive and it is expanding all the time
as new types of media provide new channels for businesses to deliver brandor sales-related messages. The massive increase in communications brought
about by the world wide web, for example, has on its own opened up a
wealth of opportunities for writers by creating an environment where news
has to be updated every few minutes and company information becomes out
of date if it is not renewed every week or so.
This is a far cry from the origins of copywriting, within the advertising
industry more than a century ago, when writers paired up with art directors
to come up with catchy slogans for the first commercials. Before those days,
ads and other promotional messages were usually penned by someone
such as the business’s proprietor, and, depending on the personality of the
author, tended to be full of brash, unsubstantiated claims or, at the other
extreme, to read like dry public information notices. By ditching this ad hoc
approach and carrying out empirical studies on the kinds of messages the
public would respond to, the first admen were able to transform the
effectiveness of advertising and, it could be argued, help bring about the
brand-dominated landscape we live in today.
In the process, much more emphasis was placed on the way words were
used and certain rules of thumb, which I will come to later in this book,
were developed to improve results. These rules have spread to other areas
where the demand for promotional text has grown, such as in direct mail,
public relations and the internet. Meanwhile, the news media – radio, TV
and, particularly, press – have also for many decades been a major market for
writers, albeit one where the demand is for a different form of prose from
the sales-oriented text produced by advertising copywriters. However, as I
will point out later in this book, producing journalistic copy relies on many
of the same principles that govern other forms of copywriting. And in
recent years, traditional media owners have increasingly branched out into
new areas, such as contract publishing or even internal communications,
which are less about hard-nosed investigative reporting and have more in
common with manifestly commercial activities such as advertising or
public relations.
6 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
A competent copywriter today might be expected – and should be able – to
turn their hand to any of these areas, regardless of their background.
Although it may not be obvious, the chances are that independent
copywriters have had a hand in a lot of the commercial messages you
see every day. In order to get a job in a big advertising agency, for
example, freelance creative teams will often do work experience at
greatly reduced rates, just to get a foot in the door. Typically, these
teams will be put to work on low-value bread-and-butter print and
poster campaigns while the top agency minds are engaged in
producing the more lucrative and prestigious cinema and TV
commercials. Elsewhere, press, public relations and direct mail
agencies, among others, commonly resort to freelancers to
supplement their in-house teams.
Experience and qualifications
Most independent copywriters gain their early experience by working in a
relevant post within a company – writing for a publisher, for example, or an
advertising agency. For some, going it alone is simply a means of making a
living in between jobs; and when it comes to producing words, freelance
work can have every bit as much credibility on a CV as full-time
employment. While such a path can provide a good grounding and, often, a
valuable network of contacts that can be exploited later, a background in
writing is by no means a prerequisite to success as an independent
copywriter. Nor do you need to have any specific qualifications. Training is
available (and I list some sources later in this book) but, again, is not
necessary and is really no substitute for on-the-job experience. Most
copywriters are self-taught to a large degree in any case. Anyone with a
sound knowledge of language and grammar and a flair for writing
can make a go of it. And everything you need to know to get started
is in this book.
Why Become a Copywriter? / 7
2. The Right Qualities
Nevertheless, there are certain qualities that can help, and might be worth
developing. Good copywriters are likely to have many or all of the following.
Listening and questioning skills
As I describe in Chapter 3, the first time you speak to a client to take a brief
can often be the most important contact you have with them.
The brief is the outline of any piece of work you are asked to do.
It can be verbal or written and may involve a face-to-face meeting
or just a phone conversation. As with an exam question, you are
unlikely to score points if you do not understand it, so it
makes sense to clarify as many points as you can.
There is more on this in Chapter 3.
In the short amount of time you may have available – sometimes as little
as ten or 15 minutes – you need to understand not only the job the client is
asking you to do, but also the audience your work is intended for, the
medium that will be used to convey it and, crucially, the cultural nuances of
the client’s business, to ensure your copy reflects their tone and style
accurately. To get this kind of information, you need to be a good listener
and ask the right sorts of questions.
The same skills are needed for interviews, which usually form the basis of
copy in newsletters, magazines, papers, websites, reports and a host of other
communications, and for feedback on your work, which may provide you
with essential clues to help you hold on to business.
8 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
The client is the person or organisation you work for. (In this book I
have followed the industry custom of using �client’ to refer to both
indiscriminately.) People who write copy in-house – for example, within
an internal communications department – may have clients within the
same organisation. But the norm, whether you are working
independently or in an agency, is for the client to be employed in a
separate business. This means you have to understand their business
as well as your own. If you are working for a client on behalf of an
agency, you may need to consider two company cultures: that of the
client and that of the agency which is paying your wages.
Creativity
Copywriting is generally seen as a highly creative discipline and, while other
aspects of the job are perhaps equally important, it is true that good
copywriters have to think laterally and possess a good imagination or else
they might never get beyond a blank piece of paper. However, if you are
going to make a living from copywriting, then creativity needs to be
tempered with practicality. Although most clients appreciate good ideas, not
all may be receptive to your wackier proposals. And unless you are happy to
provide them with something more suitable, you may end up cutting
off potentially lucrative sources of income. Good copywriters learn to
channel their imagination so their inspiration is couched in terms the client
will understand and relate to – in other words, so it fits in with the client’s
culture.
Beware of ideas above your client’s station. Sometimes you can have an
idea that you believe is absolutely right for your client – if only they will be
prepared to try something a bit riskier than they currently do elsewhere in
their communications.
Although you may well be right about the effectiveness of the idea, in
practice few clients are bold enough to buy into a concept that goes beyond
the boundaries of their corporate culture. So a copywriter who wants
to win business will always provide a fall-back idea that, while perhaps less
ambitious, fits in with the kind of communication the client is used to seeing.
Why Become a Copywriter? / 9
Attention to detail
Because it rarely seems to go hand-in-hand with creativity, attention to
detail is probably the one skill that many prospective (and some practising)
copywriters lack. But it is immensely important. The copywriter’s job is to
produce messages for their client’s organisation – and the subliminal content
of these messages, the way things are said, can be just as important as what
is said. No matter how creative, copy that is riddled with spelling mistakes
or grammatical errors will hardly enhance your client’s reputation. If your
client notices mistakes, they will be well within their rights to query your
abilities – or decide not to use your services again in future. If they do not
pick up on errors, then their customers may, and your copy will still fail to
achieve its aims.
Remember, as a copywriter you are expected to be an expert in language and
writing. Everyone makes mistakes, but dotting �i’s and crossing �t’s is probably
more essential in copywriting than in any other profession.
Incidentally, this is one area where even journalists, who are specially
trained to watch out for inaccuracies in reporting, can come unstuck,
because they often learn to dash out words as quickly as possible and rely on
editors and sub-editors to pick up on mistakes. The independent copywriter
rarely has this luxury, and has to act as both the writer and the editor.
Self-motivation
One of the great things about working as a freelance copywriter is that you
can do as little or as much work as you want or need to. But no matter how
lackadaisical you might be about working, sooner or later you will need to
haul yourself out of bed, or away from the TV, to get a job done before the
deadline, or to make a few calls so your source of income does not run out
completely.
Like being at college, in copywriting you can get by, provided your outgoings
are not too high, with relatively little effort. But the more you put in, the more
you are likely to get out.
10 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Business acumen
Free spirits might see the ins and outs of running a company as too dull and
complicated to be worth worrying about. But while it is true that you do
not need much knowledge in this area to run a successful copywriting
business, it is important to have some skills at least. Most independent
copywriters work alone and have to be adept not only at selling their
services, but also at pricing their time properly, keeping on top of invoices
and payment and carrying out many other tasks that will ensure a steady
income.
This might seem like a fairly straightforward affair, but virtually every
copywriter I know of, myself included, has managed to run into cash flow
problems at some point, and usually as a result of something simple like not
putting aside enough money to cover the tax bill.
Knowing how to run a business may also help you understand
some of the challenges faced by your client, which in turn will help
you deliver copy that meets their requirements.
An easygoing disposition
Good independent copywriters are often really nice people. They need to
be. When a client buys into a copywriter, they are buying a person rather
than a product or team. And while ostensibly they are buying a copywriter’s
writing ability, they will often make a choice on the basis of personality,
presentation and so on rather than on the evidence presented in a portfolio.
The most important thing for many clients is that the copywriter �clicks’
with them and their business – in other words, that the copywriter can
empathise with and understand the client. A copywriter’s livelihood is
dependent on their ability to meet and get on with a wide range of clients.
And their ability to deliver good copy depends on them being sympathetic
to the client’s needs and circumstances. Copywriters have to be able to
accept, with good grace, requests or changes that may go against the grain
of what they believe in. Sometimes they have to challenge existing ways of
Why Become a Copywriter? / 11
thinking and doing things, without creating ill feeling. Away from clients,
independent copywriters often rely on a network of like-minded people for
related services such as design or promotion. So if you would rather not deal
with people, perhaps you should think about a different kind of business.
How did you score?
This is not a test! If you lack the skills outlined above, this does not
necessarily mean copywriting is out of the question. And you need not
spend too much time, effort or money to find out.
This book can help you learn the basics so you can try your hand as a
copywriter and see if you like it. You could still make money from the
experience, even if you do not make a life-long career of it.
3. Running Your Own Business
In any event, if you want to become a freelance copywriter you will also
have to consider if you possess the qualities you need to run your own
business and work independently. For example:
в—†
The freedom to work from home is a big plus for many copywriters but
may well not suit someone who really enjoys working as part of a
close-knit team, or who shares a cramped living space with other
occupants.
в—†
Chasing invoices may be OK for those who have no problem focusing on
the financial side of business, but for many it is a chore that, no matter
how important, is liable to be left to one side.
в—†
As with any form of self-employment, there is no cast-iron guarantee of
income, which could prove a disincentive for those with major
commitments or those who simply appreciate the security of a monthly
pay cheque.
12 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
There are ways around many of these problems. Partners may be able to
help with administration, for example, and people who do not like working
alone may find it easier to hire space in a busy office environment. But it
pays to give these problems some thought before you embark on a freelance
career.
It can also help to talk to friends or work associates who run their own
businesses, even if they are in a different field, to find out what pitfalls they
have encountered and how they have dealt with them.
Also, think about the times you have had to work on your own, either as
part of a job or perhaps while studying for exams. If you found it difficult,
the chances are you might face similar problems if you go it alone as an
independent copywriter.
Do you have to specialise?
Theoretically there is no reason why a good writer cannot turn their hand to
almost any form of prose; witness how many novelists are or were previously
journalists, for example. In practice, however, many copywriters choose to
specialise to some degree, either because they find it easier to master certain
types of writing (direct mail, for instance) or because they develop in-depth
knowledge about certain market sectors.
What is it like to be a freelance copywriter?
Copywriting is an ideal way to make money by working for yourself and
using your brains and creativity. As your own boss, you can choose when
and how much to work, and even who to work for. Since you are unlikely to
need to employ other people, the book-keeping and legal aspects of your
business will be fairly straightforward. The work can be almost as varied as
you want it to be and, if you can demonstrate the value of what you do,
charging good money for it should not be a problem. Perhaps the best part
of the job, however, is that you get paid exactly for the effort you put in.
There can be few feelings more satisfying than the knowledge that each of
the carefully-crafted sentences you have put together for a client is earning
you pennies and pounds.
Why Become a Copywriter? / 13
A typical day in the life of a copywriter
Freelance copywriting work is so varied that you are unlikely to have the
same routine each day. But an average day might involve:
в—†
Checking for emails regarding new jobs or work in progress
в—†
Taking briefs in person, by phone or email
в—†
Replying with time scales and costs
в—†
Doing research or background reading
в—†
Drafting copy or making changes to an existing draft
в—†
Chasing material or approval for a piece of work
в—†
Making new business calls
в—†
Networking with business contacts
в—†
Invoicing or doing other administrative work
в—†
Checking finished work.
4. Earnings
The final question you will probably want to take into account when
considering your own copywriting business is how much you might expect
to earn.
There is no easy answer to this. As with many other types of business, the
amount you get out is likely to be largely related to how much you put in.
At the highest end of the spectrum, top creative teams in advertising can go
on to found their own agencies that, in time, may be worth millions. As an
independent copywriter, it is more likely your income will be dictated by
how much work you can do on your own, and how much you can charge
for your talents.
Copywriting rates vary immensely but even as little as ВЈ100 a day can
guarantee a salary of more than ВЈ20,000 a year, given a steady stream of
14 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
work. Good practitioners can easily expect to earn up to two or three times
this amount. In addition, those who work from home will be able to write
off part of their household expenses against tax, so they will effectively keep
more of the money they earn than their counterparts in full-time
employment.
However, unless you have a ready-made network of contacts, or a client
that can guarantee regular, well-paid work, it is wise to assume that it may
take a few months to build up a good income. Here, though, copywriting
offers a better deal than many other business start-ups in that the initial
outlay needed is fairly minimal. And, as with other businesses, Her Majesty’s
Revenue and Customs provides a further break by not asking for tax until up
to 18 months from the time you start trading – although that does not
mean it is not a good idea to put some money aside to allow for it.
For many people, the move into freelance copywriting is a lifestyle decision
rather than a financial one. There can be few other jobs that offer such freedom,
variety and satisfaction.
International earning potential
One of the great things about copywriting is that you can work for people
anywhere in the world, no matter where you are based. In Chapter 8 I
provide guidelines on how to adapt copy for foreign audiences and clients.
Touting your talents abroad also involves thinking about the way you
promote and price your services – both covered in Chapter 6.
If you have read this far and feel freelance copywriting is the thing for
you, then congratulations. Stick with me through the rest of this book
and before long you should know enough to get started. I hope you
will enjoy making your livelihood in copywriting as much as I do, and
find it rewarding in other ways, too.
2
Getting Started
1. The Good News
So you have decided to set up your own business as a copywriter. Quite
apart from worries about how your technical abilities will measure up when
you go it alone, you are likely to be daunted by the prospect of having to
handle the business side of your enterprise and sorting out all those complex
areas, such as tax, invoicing, promotion or legal matters, that are usually
�someone else’s department’ in the cosy world of employment. Indeed, it is
probably the fears about having to operate a business, rather than doubts
about one’s abilities as a copywriter, which put most people off setting up
independently.
Well, here are three bits of good news.
в—†
First, while there is a certain amount of red tape and administration
involved in setting up a business, it is far from excessive; certainly not
enough to deter the thousands of people, from plumbers and cab drivers
to lawyers and architects, who do start and run their own businesses
successfully every year.
в—†
Second, you do not have to deal with that much on day one. As a
copywriter, you can start trading with just a few bare essentials and
incorporate most of the trappings of your business, such as stationery,
detailed accounts and even much of your equipment, in the weeks or
months that follow. The government requires you to register for things
like taxation, but it recognises that the main priority for new businesses is
to start earning money, so it imposes relatively few requirements on you
15
16 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
at the outset and usually allows many aspects of your business dealings to
be backdated.
в—†
Third, the effort you have to put into administration is compensated for
by the fact that running your own business offers many benefits which
simply are not available to employees. Quite apart from improving your
lifestyle – no commuting to the office or working overtime without pay,
for example – being able to offset many of your expenses against tax
means the taxman ends up with less of your cash.
Nevertheless, there will probably be a few things you want to get
straight in your mind before you take the plunge. Like, for example,
when you should do it.
2. The Basics
When is the best time to start?
Not everyone gets to choose when they can set up a business. For many
copywriters, self-employment may come unexpectedly as a result of
redundancy or in response to an unforeseen change in circumstances.
Otherwise, the timing might be dictated by the end of a course of study or
other change in professional circumstances. In some cases, though, you
might have the luxury of picking your moment, and you might be
wondering when is best.
The short answer is that you can set up your business at any time, but it
helps to be assured of some work from the outset.
Preferably, you should have a good idea of how much you need or want
to earn (see �Having a business plan’, below) and firm offers of regular work
that will cover most of your required income.
You can usually count on picking up extra clients once you get going, but
remember that not every promise of a job results in an assignment. For the
same reason, be wary of setting up in business on the basis of a single
Getting Started / 17
project, no matter how large, unless you are reasonably confident you can
sell your skills elsewhere too.
If you are in full-time employment, you might want to work out your full
notice to give you time to start thinking about and working on your
business. It also helps to leave on good terms – your former employer may
well turn out to be a valued client.
In any event you should, if you can, start lining up work a good few weeks in
advance of your proposed start date. In the fortnight or so leading up to D-day,
warm up your contacts and get firm briefs or contracts.
It is all very well to �open up shop’ and hope for trade to come rolling through
the door, but copywriting is not like owning a shop. You have to go out and get
the business. And there is no better way to start than to have a project in hand.
Who will be involved in your business?
Most independent copywriters set up in business on their own. After all,
what they are selling are their own, particular skills. However, there might
be reasons why you would want to go into business with others.
в—†
You may know someone whose skills are a good fit with yours, either as a
copywriter or in an allied field such as design or marketing. Going into
business together might improve your chances of success because you
will be able to cross-sell each other’s services. But bear in mind that
finding two salaries may be more than twice as difficult as finding one. If
you are unsure about whether the partnership will work, it could be a
good idea to first try forming an informal alliance, trading separately and
independently but taking on projects together.
в—†
If you are fortunate enough to be certain of a guaranteed high level of
business, you might feel you will need to employ other copywriters and
staff to do other work, such as running your accounts. In this case, you
will probably want to talk to a business adviser about putting together a
detailed business plan (see below) and perhaps doing some research to
make doubly sure of your profit expectations before setting out.
18 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
If you have a partner who is not in full-time employment, there can be
tax advantages to their being involved in your business. Paying a member
of your family to help out with things such as administration can count as
a tax-deductible expense for your business, for example, and cut your
costs by using up their personal tax allowance.
Having a business plan
Starting a copywriting business does not usually demand a fully-fledged
business plan. After all, you are not likely to need to sell your idea to
anyone, unless you need to approach your bank for a loan for equipment.
However, it is definitely advisable to put your ideas about your business in
order and make a few calculations to be sure it will be viable. Things you
need to consider include:
в—†
Roughly how much do you need or want to earn a year?
в—†
How many days a year can you realistically expect to work? (Remember
to subtract holidays and weekends – and do not expect to get work five
days a week, every week.)
в—†
Your expected earnings divided by the days you work will give you an
idea of the minimum day rate you need to charge. Now ask yourself
whether it is realistic. (See Chapter 6 for more on pricing.)
в—†
Where will you find the clients to provide you with this work? (Again, see
Chapter 6 for more on this, but you should preferably have a good idea
of where your clients will come from before you get started.)
в—†
Have you taken into account the costs of setting up your business –
buying equipment and so on – plus other outgoings, such as office space
(if you intend to rent it)?
Whether or not you formalise these points on paper is up to you, but it will
definitely help build your confidence and probably improve your chances of
success if you go through the exercise. It can also help to set goals for your
business – increasing your turnover by a certain amount each year, for
Getting Started / 19
example, or boosting the number of clients you work for – which you can review
on a regular basis and which will help you move ahead as time goes by.
3. What Sort of Business?
Your options
One thing you will have to do from the outset is decide what sort of
business you want to set up. You have three choices:
в—†
To be a sole trader
в—†
To form a partnership
в—†
To form a limited company.
Sole trader
A sole trader is the simplest business entity and basically means that the
person and the business are one and the same. Most self-employed
tradesmen fall into this category. The big advantage is that it is easy to set
up and run a business as a sole trader – all you will need to do is register
with your tax office and keep a fairly straightforward set of accounts.
You are liable for your own costs, tax and National Insurance, but beyond
that you keep what you earn.
The disadvantages are that you cannot be a sole trader if you want to
include other people in your business and the arrangement might not be
very tax-efficient if you make a fair amount of profit. If you do not trade
under your own name, you will need to show your name and address on
your stationery and at your work place.
Partnership
A partnership is when the business represents two or more persons who,
technically, have joint responsibility and liability for what the business does.
This is the type of arrangement most often used by purveyors of professional
20 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
services, such as lawyers or accountants. There can be tax advantages in
setting up this kind of business with your spouse (or someone else you have
a relationship with), but your accounts will be more complex – you will have
to complete a tax return for each partner and a separate one for the
partnership, for instance. Other points to note are:
в—†
There is no limit to the level of involvement a partner can have in the
business; they can work on it full-time or not at all.
в—†
Similarly, there is no restriction on them working elsewhere, so they
could even have a full-time job of their own. (Although in this case their
earnings might have an effect on how tax-efficient it is for them to be
involved – see Chapter 5.)
в—†
Although it is not a legal requirement, you might want to get a solicitor
to draw up a partnership agreement if you think there could at some
point be any dispute or disagreement over ownership, share of profits or
other areas of the business.
в—†
Each partner has �joint and several liability’ for the finances of the
business. This effectively means you can be responsible for any debts your
partner might run up.
в—†
Since 2001, however, legislation in the UK has allowed for the formation
of limited liability partnerships (often abbreviated to LLPs). As their
name indicates, these are partnerships where the partners do not have
unlimited liability for each other’s actions, conferring a level of
protection similar to that afforded to the directors of a limited
company.
Limited company
A limited company is where the business is a separate legal entity from the
people who own it, manage it and work in it. Most businesses with medium
or large turnovers fall into this category and there is a number of reasons
why. For example, a limited company is taxed at a much lower rate (around
ten per cent) than an individual and profits can be taken out tax-free in the
Getting Started / 21
form of a dividend, increasing the amount of cash you can keep if you are a
higher-rate taxpayer. Also, if the business runs into trouble, the liability for
losses is limited to the company (hence the name �limited company’) and
although directors do have a measure of personal responsibility for the affairs
of the business, they are not exposed to the level of risk that they would be
as sole traders or partners. However, there is a downside. Establishing a
limited company involves more administration. Accounts and annual returns
have to be filed at Companies House every year within specified dates, for
example, and it is essential to appoint a company secretary and follow
established procedures in the running of the business. As a director, you will
be an employee of the company and will be subject to benefit-in-kind rules
which will mean you will incur additional tax and National Insurance for
things like company cars.
Failure to comply with these requirements can be a criminal offence.
Which is best?
There are no hard and fast rules as to which type of business you should set
up. You will need to consider which best suits the kind of operation you
have in mind. For example:
в—†
If you do not anticipate earning enough to put you in the higher-rate tax
bracket (around ВЈ34,600 a year) and shudder at the thought of a lot of
paperwork, you would probably be better off working as a sole trader.
в—†
If your earnings are likely to exceed ВЈ34,000 and you have a spouse or
partner who is earning less, forming a partnership can allow you to split
the profits from your business so you do not end up paying higher rate
tax.
в—†
A limited company can appear more professional and, potentially, is a
good option if you are planning to go into business with others. But it
22 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
involves a degree more hassle and is unlikely to be worth the effort unless
you plan to earn substantial amounts of money.
Of course, there is nothing to stop you starting out with one type of
business and altering it as your circumstances change. However, bear in
mind that moving up the scale from sole trader to partnership to limited
company is a lot more straightforward than doing the reverse.
For its simplicity, the sole trader arrangement makes a good starting
point. If you are not sure, though, it makes sense to speak to a
business adviser or an accountant.
4. Other Considerations
What about VAT?
If your turnover is more than ВЈ64,000 in a 12-month period (at the time of
writing – check with your local Revenue and Customs office or accountant
to see if this is still the current level), you have to register with Her
Majesty’s Revenue and Customs for Value Added Tax (VAT) and add a
charge of 17.5 per cent to your bills. Below ВЈ64,000, you can register
for VAT if you want to. Being VAT-registered will entitle you to claim
back VAT on your expenses (more on this in Chapter 5) and can give the
impression of a bigger business, but you will have to file VAT returns
every quarter. Also note that certain clients, such as those involved in
insurance, education or transport, are not able to reclaim VAT, so, for
them, registering would effectively make your fees higher than those of
non-registered competitors.
You will probably want to weigh up whether the size and status of
your business will warrant the extra effort you will have to put into being
VAT-registered. In any case, you should keep an eye on your turnover once
it starts to creep up towards ВЈ64,000 in a 12-month period as there are
penalties for not registering when you reach this limit.
Getting Started / 23
In my experience, it makes little difference to clients whether you are VAT
registered or not. So if you do not expect to have a high turnover, you
might be better off not registering and saving yourself the hassle of
having to prepare VAT returns every three months.
In any case, registering for VAT once you are up and running is a very
straightforward affair. Although it does involve more work, and there are
penalties and interest charged on unpaid VAT if you miss filing deadlines,
you might find that preparing your accounts every quarter helps you keep
better track of how well your business is doing.
Also beware that the threshold for VAT is on turnover, not profit, so you
may have to register in any case if you are handling large-value jobs, such as
print work, that you recharge directly to your client(s).
Naming your business
Since you will effectively be selling yourself and your skills, there is no need
to come up with a fancy name for your business. Your own name should be
the one you promote. The exception to this might be if you feel it is
important to emphasise that more than one person is involved in the
business, for example if you decide to set up a partnership or a limited
company. In the first case, you might want to reflect the nature of your
business in its name: �Joe Bloggs Partners’ or �Joe Bloggs Partnership’ for
instance. Another option might be �Joe Bloggs Associates’. If you have a
limited company, you might want to get away altogether from any
association with your own name, although you cannot set up a limited
company with the same name as someone else in your line of business. You
might also find there are few word combinations that can usefully and
meaningfully be applied to your company and which have not been taken
already.
A further consideration is whether or to what extent you want to promote
your business over the internet. You will probably want to check whether
24 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
the name you want to trade with has not already been registered on the
internet by someone else.
If you have a website, its domain name is a unique method of
identification by which people can find it, a bit like a postal address. Like
postal addresses, you cannot use one that has already been taken; and
following the explosion of internet services in the late 90s, many have.
You can find this out easily through any number of domain name
registration services. Your internet service provider (ISP) will probably provide
a domain name look-up feature on its home page; otherwise, you could try
www.netnames.com. For more on promoting your service online, see Chapter 6.
Stationery
While you are working out what to call yourself, you may well start
wondering whether you need to get professionally designed and printed
business cards and stationery. These things can all help you project a more
professional image and business cards, at least, can be useful in helping you
get your name and contact details about. They are not an essential
prerequisite for your business, however.
If you can get them done well and cheaply, then go ahead,
but otherwise my advice would be to concentrate on getting
your first commissions rather than worrying too much
about the look of your stationery.
When you do get round to designing your stationery, either on your own
computer or with professional help, make sure you remember to include all
your contact details: address, phone and, if you have them, fax, mobile,
email and website. Also, if you are relying on your own design skills, try not
to get too carried away with fancy typefaces or desk-top publishing effects
unless you are a reasonably able designer. You will get a more professional
look with a plain, understated layout.
Getting Started / 25
Getting your priorities right
There is an argument to say the first thing you need to worry about when
you set up your business is not the business itself, but making a profit;
selling your skills, getting commissions and completing work quickly so you
can invoice your clients and be assured of money flowing into your shiny
new coffers.
This is undoubtedly true and some aspects of setting up a business make
it easier to concentrate on profits. Income tax, for example, does not need
to be paid until well over a year after you have got started. But, clearly,
ignoring your tax affairs for this amount of time is hardly a recipe for
success.
Luckily, even with a lot of work to do, you should be able to find
pockets of spare time in the initial stages to enable you to take care of
the administrative side of running your business.
5. What You Absolutely Have To Do
The one thing you have to do when you start up business is to let the tax
authorities know. If you are working freelance, clients might need to see
evidence of your self-employed status before they take you on, so they can
be sure they will not be held liable for your National Insurance
contributions.
If you are setting up as a sole trader, you will need to notify your local tax
office in order to get a Schedule D number. To find out more, contact your
local tax office. They are listed in the phone book and they will also tell you
how to pay Class 2 National Insurance Contributions.
в—†
Your tax office can also advise you on what to do if you set up a
partnership.
в—†
If you are setting up a company, you will need to notify Companies
House. You can find out more from the Companies House website,
www.companieshouse.co.uk.
26 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
If you expect to earn more than around ВЈ64,000 a year, you will need to
register for VAT. You do this with Her Majesty’s Revenue and Customs.
Again, details of your nearest office can be found in the phone book,
under �VAT’.
Unless you want to do your own accounts, you might also want to appoint
an accountant for your business. You will not need them to do any work at
the beginning, but they can provide valuable help and advice on starting
out. To find an accountant, ask other self-employed people or small
businesses for recommendations, if possible. Otherwise, you could look for
someone local in the Yellow Pages.
You might want to speak to a few prospective advisers before you choose
one. Ask for a written quote of their rates. These can vary widely, but
should not really be more than a few hundred pounds for the preparation of
one year’s accounts and a tax return, if you have got good bookkeeping
records. Also, check to see if they have experience in your area of business.
You may be relying on your accountant to represent your business to
the tax authorities, so it will help if they have a good understanding of
what you do so they can argue your case most effectively.
3
Getting Kitted Out
1. What You Need To Get Going
One of the great things about setting up a copywriting business is how little
outlay you need to make to get going.
At its simplest, you can get away with a phone, a personal computer (PC)
or Apple Macintosh with a standard word processor such as Microsoft
Word, plus a printer, email and internet access – all of which can be bought
cheaply as a bundle, and the costs of which you could probably recoup with
your first commission. You might not even have to worry about such basic
equipment if your first few jobs are on client premises.
On top of that, you may find it useful to have a fax machine (unless your
computer has software which allows it to send and receive faxes) and, quite
possibly, other equipment such as a dictaphone or tape recorder, a scanner
(particularly if you intend to have your own website) and something to back
up your work on.
Nowadays, you should be able to pick up pretty much all of this for less
than ВЈ1,000. Also, bear in mind that most of the technology covered in this
chapter is affected by Moore’s Law (after Gordon Moore, the founder of
Intel), which basically says that the amount of computer memory available
per dollar doubles every 18 months. This helps drive down prices for
everything from laptops to printers at a fairly steady rate, so be aware that
some of the prices quoted here may go quickly out of date.
You may also need to buy shelves, a desk and a chair if you do not have
furniture to hand that you can use in your office. Again, however, this is
unlikely to set you back more than a few hundred pounds.
27
28 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Remember that you do not need to shell out for a complete, high-tech office
environment from the outset. It may well be best to buy the absolute minimum
you need and add or upgrade your office furniture and equipment when you
need to or have some spare cash to afford it.
Keep the receipts for everything you buy as these expenses
are all tax-deductible.
2. Your Computer
Your computer will be your primary business tool and it is worth taking
some time to make the right decision when choosing it, if you do not
already have one. The options available can seem a little daunting, but
things you will need to consider include:
New or second-hand?
If you are really strapped for cash, you might want to consider buying a
computer second-hand. Before you do, however, bear in mind the following:
в—†
Computers double in power and halve in price roughly every 18 months
(see Moore’s Law above), so even a new computer bought today will
probably be obsolete in a few years’ time. A second-hand model will have
even less useful life left.
в—†
For the same reason, the speed, memory and software of any
second-hand computers are likely to be significantly inferior to those of a
new model.
в—†
Many manufacturers (Dell, for example) will allow you to customise your
computer when you buy it new, so you pay only for the things you need.
With a second-hand computer you get what you see, and the price might
be bumped up by a flashy games card or suchlike that will be of no use
to you in your business.
Getting Kitted Out / 29
My advice would be to buy a new computer if you do not have one
already. You can keep the price down by shopping around and
selecting only the features you need.
PC or Apple Mac?
A few years ago the choice of whether to buy a PC or an Apple Macintosh
would have been a major one for most budding copywriters. The trendy
Apple has always been the favoured tool of creative industries such as design
and publishing, largely because it is easy to use and its operating system is
geared towards handling graphics files and the like. PCs, on the other
hand, have become the main platform in most other businesses because
they are cheaper and perfectly competent at handling most corporate
applications.
As a result, many creative software applications, like QuarkXPress, the
professional desktop publishing package used by most publishers, were
initially developed with the Apple in mind, while general business
applications like the Microsoft Office suite of products (which includes
Word, the most widely used word processor) were designed for the PC. For
a long time, too, both types of computer had great difficulty understanding
each other, so you needed special programs to make Apple files readable on
a PC and vice versa.
These days, however, PC and Apple systems are largely interoperable and
most common software works on both, so which one you choose is largely a
matter of personal taste. Writing generally looks smaller on Apple Mac
screens than on a PC. And Apple Macs have other quirks (such as no
right-click mouse button) which can take a bit of getting used to if you have
worked with PCs before. Apples are, however, undeniably better looking,
easier to use and generally faster and more responsive than PCs.
30 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
If you are really not sure which type of computer to choose, you might
want to think about where the bulk of your work will come from. If
your clients are likely to be ad agencies or publishing houses, it would
make sense to buy an Apple Mac as this is the type of computer they
are most likely to use. If you expect most of your projects to be for
corporate clients, then a PC might be a safer bet.
Desktop versus laptop
Another question is whether it is worth investing in a laptop computer
instead of a bulkier desktop. Again, this is largely a question of personal
taste. Points that might influence your decision include:
в—†
Laptops tend to be about a third more expensive than desktops but this
extra expense might be worth it if you do not have much space in your
office or will gain extra work from being able to carry your computer
with you.
в—†
If you do buy a laptop and intend to carry it around a lot, you will
probably want to take out extra insurance to cover accidental damage,
loss or theft. Remember to back up your work often.
в—†
Laptops can be more prone to wear and tear than desktops, and more
difficult and expensive to upgrade.
в—†
However, a portable computer can be very useful if you are likely to need
to make presentations to existing or prospective clients.
If you think a laptop would be useful, points to consider when making your
purchase include:
в—†
Screen size, brightness and resolution. If your laptop is going to stay
in your office most of the time, it makes sense to go for the largest and
highest-resolution screen possible, for the sake of your eyes. Also bear in
mind that dim screens can be impossible to see in bright light.
Getting Kitted Out / 31
в—†
Peripherals and connectors. As with all computers, try to make sure
your laptop is as �connectable’ as possible. You might also want to find
out if your laptop can connect to the internet via your mobile phone, or
link to other computers via a network.
в—†
Size and weight. While a larger laptop might not be a bad buy (because
you will have a better sized screen and keyboard to work with), if you are
going to take it out with you, you will want it to be as light as possible.
в—†
Battery life. The longer the better, if you intend to do a lot of work
while travelling. If you regularly face long journeys it may be worth
buying a spare battery to take with you.
If you intend to carry the laptop around a lot, you will probably want to buy
a sturdy carry case, too.
3. Software
Software usually comes bundled with your computer and in some cases you
can save a few pennies by buying a machine that is filled with programs from
lesser-known vendors. This may well prove to be a false economy. Like it or
not, the world and its dog all use Microsoft Office products and if you do
not then you are bound to get stuck sooner or later when a client sends you
an extremely important Excel spreadsheet or PowerPoint presentation that
you cannot read.
It is also not a good idea to assume you will be able to pick up a bootleg
or cheap copy of whatever you need later on. First, bootlegs are illegal and
your lawyer (if you have one) would probably recommend that you stay on
the right side of the law if you want to run a successful business. Second,
even discounted versions of stand-alone programs such as PowerPoint or
Excel could set you back hundreds of pounds – more than it would cost you
to buy the whole lot as a bundle when you first purchase your computer.
When you are looking at software, I would recommend you get Microsoft
Word, PowerPoint and Excel as a bare minimum, if for no other reason than
your clients are likely to send you files in these formats. Outlook and
32 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Internet Explorer – Microsoft’s email and internet browser programs – will
come as standard with any Office package.
In general, most of the software you will need to deal with files over
the internet can be downloaded for free or for a small fee, which is
tax-deductible.
Word processors, browsers and email
The three most important pieces of software you will use as a copywriter are
a word processor (for writing), a web browser (for internet access) and email
(for communicating with clients and contacts). Unless you have bought a
computer from another planet, the chances are you will get all three
bundled with your machine. If you are using a PC then you will end up
using Microsoft Word and Microsoft Internet Explorer. If you buy an
Apple, you will get Pages (which is compatible with Word) and Safari.
Either way, you will be ready to go.
You will also, as likely as not, get either Microsoft Outlook or Mail,
depending on whether you are using a PC or a Mac. Both will be fine,
although when it comes to email you might want to remember that there is
a wide range of options to choose from and you may want to take advantage
of more than one. A webmail account, using a provider such as Hotmail,
Yahoo! or Gmail, can be handy as a backup where you need to provide an
email address but are wary of being spammed, or will need to access emails
frequently while on the move. Another email system commonly found in
large businesses is Lotus Notes from IBM, which is used by more than 120
million people worldwide, although you are unlikely to encounter it unless
you are working for a client that uses it.
Beware that web mail services tend to be less versatile than
standard email packages like Outlook Express. And because they are
based on independently-hosted websites, they are prone
to service breakdowns on occasion.
Getting Kitted Out / 33
Security software
In this day and age, some form of software to prevent virus attacks should
be viewed as a necessity rather than a luxury. Virus protection packages now
come as standard with most computers and can be updated automatically
over the internet; with new types of virus appearing almost on a daily basis,
if a virus protection system is not frequently updated it soon becomes
obsolete.
If your computer does not have a pre-installed virus protection system,
you will probably need to pay an annual subscription and download one
from the internet. The few pounds it will cost you a year is more than
worth the investment.
At best, a virus attack is likely to hamper your work and could prove
embarrassing if the virus is transmitted to clients. At worst, some viruses can
wipe your computer’s hard drive or cripple the machine.
There is little to choose from between virus protection systems. The
major suppliers, including McAfee or Sophos, are more or less on a par in
terms of their effectiveness (in fact some of them are different brand names
for the same companies), so you might as well choose them on the basis of
price or recommendation from friends.
One thing that I have discovered, however, is that some of these systems
can themselves interfere with the working of your computer and slow it
down. If this happens, you will need to remove the program (using the
�uninstall’ option within the �Add/Remove Programs’ file in the Control
Panel folder of your computer, if you are using Microsoft Office) and try
with a different vendor.
If your work is likely to involve handling or generating confidential
material, you might want to consider installing a firewall, which acts like an
electronic gatekeeper on your computer to prevent hackers from accessing it
over the internet; if nothing else, it can help put your clients’ minds at ease.
One will probably be bundled with your anti-virus system, but if not then a
simple, effective and free firewall called Zone Alarm can be downloaded
from www.zonealarm.com.
34 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Choosing an Apple Mac computer can help prevent virus attacks as
most viruses are designed to infect PCs. It is still wise to get some
form of protection for your Macintosh, however.
4. Internet Access
Being able to get online, for internet access, email and other applications, is
practically essential in today’s business environment. As a copywriter, it is
one of the few things I recommend you do not cut corners on. At the time
of writing, you can still find internet service providers (ISPs) who will get
you online for nothing or next to nothing with a dial-up service, which
essentially means making a phone call to connect to your ISP. This will tie
up your phone line (unless you have a second line in your workspace) and
will not do your phone bill any favours. Also, you might be limited by the
speed of the connection.
A far better bet is broadband, which gives you a high-speed, �always on’
connection and leaves your phone line free. Broadband is now available
virtually everywhere and the cost is falling rapidly. In any case, the increase
in productivity you will get from using it will easily repay your monthly
subscription charge.
A broadband connection will also allow you to take the fullest advantage
of a number of useful internet applications, such as:
в—†
Voice over IP (VoIP) services such as Skype. These let you call other
users of the same service for free and give you the option of making
international calls at greatly reduced rates. VoIP is more than just a
phone service, as it incorporates applications ranging from Instant
Messaging (see below) to videoconferencing.
в—†
Instant Messaging (IM). If you work regularly with the same group of
clients and contacts then I would strongly urge you to find out if they
use IM services such as Windows Live Messenger or Yahoo! Messenger.
Getting Kitted Out / 35
These will let you see when people are online and chat to them over the
web in real time. This can be useful when you are working closely with
them on a project, as messaging is less intrusive than a phone call and
quicker (and less formal) then email.
в—†
Social networking sites. Although there is some debate over the value
of sites such as Facebook or MySpace for business, they can serve as a
way of keeping in touch with clients and contacts and give you a way of
easily showing off your portfolio of work online, if you do not have the
time or inclination to put together a website (see Chapter 6).
If you are a laptop user, you might also want to consider installing a wireless
network in your workspace. The advantage of this is that it allows you to be
a lot more flexible about where you work (you can check emails while eating
breakfast in the kitchen, for example) and other people (family members,
flatmates or, in a more professional setup, clients and work collaborators)
can share your broadband connection. The main technologies to choose
from are WiFi and WiMAX. The former, which is traditionally used for
home and small office wireless installations, is perfectly good for anything
the typical copywriter is likely to need. Obviously, if you are working on
client premises or in leased or serviced offices (see next chapter) then the
way you get online is likely to be dictated by the type of connectivity
provided in the building.
If you travel a lot then you may want to look into getting a mobile data card to
plug into your laptop. That way you can get online from anywhere, using the
mobile phone network.
The pricing and quality of internet services varies almost from
day to day. Before making your final decision of provider, buy a
specialist magazine such as Internet to get up to speed on
the latest offers and recommendations.
36 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
5. Computer Peripherals
Printers
Apart from your phone and computer, a printer is likely to be one of your
most important technology purchases. You can choose between inkjet or
laserjet models. The former are cheaper, but have higher running costs and
are probably less cost-effective if you expect to print out large amounts of
text.
Another choice is between a black-and-white and a colour machine. Not
only are colour printers more expensive than black-and-white ones, but their
running costs are higher as well. Colour can help with presentation but is
probably only really necessary if your work will include an element of design
or layout, for example if you need to provide colour proofs for sign-off.
If you are buying a new computer, you may be able to get a printer
bundled in with it. Check the printer’s list price, but it is likely that the
combined price will represent a significant saving.
Scanners
A scanner is not essential for copywriting, but, again, can be useful if offered
at a discount as part of a package when you buy your computer. The main
uses for scanners are to incorporate images into documents and websites,
and, in conjunction with optical character recognition programs, to scan
printed documents directly into word processors so the text can be
manipulated. However, with the increasing use of digital images and soft
copy (electronic versions of text that can be transferred over the internet)
both of these applications are becoming less critical. If needed, a good
scanner and its associated software can be picked up at any high street
computer store for under ВЈ100.
Getting Kitted Out / 37
Storage devices
Sooner or later, your computer is going to die. It is a fact of life. And if you
have not been saving your work elsewhere on a regular basis, then you (and
your clients) will be sorry. Luckily, though, all you need nowadays to make
sure that does not happen is a USB flash drive or JumpDrive, available
cheaply online or from any computer or electronics store. In fact, you may
not even need to buy a flash drive. I currently back up more than a decade’s
worth of work onto my iPod, which still has plenty of spare space for music,
and if you are starting out then you could probably back up your work on
your mobile phone. Being able to carry a full set of files around with you
like this is particularly handy if you need to access them while away from
base, for instance if you are doing some work at a client’s premises on their
computers, but you may want to consider password-protecting access to
sensitive files in case you lose the storage device.
Remember to keep your backup files in a safe place.
Having a good backup system is pointless unless you use it. You should
get into the habit of copying your files to disk on a regular basis;
monthly at least, and preferably every week.
Other peripherals
It is unlikely you will need anything more than a computer and printer to
start with. But as time goes by you could well end up picking up other
add-ons, such as a digital camera (which will allow you to download
photographs direct to your computer) or cards and connectors that will let
you hook your laptop (if you have one) to your mobile (so you can access
the internet while travelling). The list of gadgets is almost endless and going
into detail about them is beyond the scope of this book.
The only point I would make is that it would probably be unwise to
spend your money on anything that cannot help you produce an obvious
return. If you do have to buy a new piece of equipment, shop around.
38 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
6. Other Equipment
Phones and answer-phones
A phone is probably the most important tool for your business. If you are
working from home, it is worth considering a second phone line for work.
You can get the phone itself for next to nothing, but since you will be using
it a lot you might want to get one that has features such as one-touch
memory keys for numbers you call frequently. An answer-phone is also a
good idea, although most phone companies (including BT) offer cheap or
free network-based voicemail services you can use if necessary.
Perhaps the best idea for starters is to buy a combined phone,
answering machine and fax (see below), which should not set you back
more than about ВЈ100.
Fax machines
Despite the rise of email as the main way of exchanging information
between locations, a fax machine is still a useful piece of kit for your
business, if only because some clients have automated accounting systems
that are programmed to send purchase orders, remittance advices and other
types of confirmation by facsimile. However, unless you suspect you will be
using the fax a lot, there is probably little reason, initially, to worry about
spending too much on this equipment. After more than a decade in business
as a freelance copywriter, I still have no problems making do with a machine
that shares my phone line and has a built-in answering system for when I am
not in.
Mobile phones
If you are one of the few remaining people in the world who does not have
a mobile phone, now is probably the time to take the plunge. A mobile is
obviously particularly useful if you expect to be away from base a lot, for
Getting Kitted Out / 39
example working on client premises. Since a missed call can mean missed
work, you should keep your mobile with you, and on, as much as possible.
For the same reason, it is preferable to have a regular rather than
pay-as-you-go tariff (remember that business phone calls are tax-deductible),
so that you do not end up running out of credit in the middle of an
important conversation. Take out insurance so you can get a replacement
easily if your phone is lost or stolen.
Remember to advertise your mobile number on your stationery and
promotional material. If you have an answer-phone, make sure you
mention your mobile number on the outgoing message.
Photocopiers
Whether you buy or rent it, a photocopier is an expensive piece of
equipment. It is probably not worth investing in unless you will be sharing it
(and the cost) with others, or have good reason to expect that you will need
to make several copies of documents on a regular basis, or can somehow
recoup the cost through the work you do.
в—†
Bear in mind that you can make occasional copies using a fax machine
(see above).
в—†
Unless you live somewhere really remote, there is likely to be a copy shop
nearby for occasional photocopying jobs. Check your Yellow Pages for
the nearest.
в—†
Most printers can double up as copiers (and vice versa).
в—†
If you want to buy a photocopier, a second-hand machine is likely to be
a great deal cheaper and might still come with a service guarantee.
40 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Dictaphones and digital recorders
A dictaphone or digital recorder is a useful gadget to have to hand for
important interviews but I would caution against using one in place of
handwritten notes or shorthand.
Trying to track down half a dozen quotable sentences in an hour’s worth
of recording is a time-consuming process and one that is hardly going to
improve your efficiency. Besides, unless you take up investigative reporting
you are unlikely to come across situations where you cannot double check
facts, figures and phrases later on.
If you decide to purchase a recorder, I would advise buying
a model which takes standard batteries so you can get
hold of new ones easily in an emergency.
7. Furniture
Wherever you are working, try to make sure your environment is
comfortable, safe and healthy. If you are furnishing your workspace yourself,
you will probably want to get:
в—†
a desk that is large enough to spread your work out on and
accommodate your computer, phone and other equipment
в—†
a good chair that provides back support and is the right height for your
desk
в—†
good lighting from an anglepoise desk lamp or similar
в—†
shelves or filing cabinets, within easy reach of your workspace.
You do not need to spend a fortune on all this. But make sure you get furniture
that is practical and ergonomic, as you will be in close contact with it for some
time. Also, it is a good idea to have a sofa or comfy chair in or near your
workspace, which you can use to take a break from your computer if, for
Getting Kitted Out / 41
example, you are reviewing source material or searching for inspiration. (It is
a very bad idea to have a TV in front of the sofa or comfy chair.)
There is more on working environments in the next chapter.
8. Vehicles
You do not need a car or other vehicle to be a copywriter but if you have
one it can be handy for work-related travel. You can count the cost of
business mileage against tax; more of this in Chapter 5. Also, be aware that
any travel above and beyond going to and from your place of work could
affect your insurance premium – check with your insurer.
4
Where to Work
1. Your Options
A major attraction of running your own copywriting business is that it frees
you from having to commute to and from an employer’s office every day. Of
course, some people relish being in an office environment, which can be an
important issue to consider if you are planning to set up on your own.
There are three obvious choices of workplace that you will probably be
contemplating, which are not necessarily mutually exclusive:
в—†
working from home
в—†
renting or buying an office
в—†
working on client premises.
2. Working From Home
Working from home is the cheapest and easiest option when starting your
business but there is a number of important considerations to weigh up
before you decide it is the one for you.
в—†
Is there enough space to accommodate you and your work equipment
without interfering with the living space used by other occupants?
в—†
Will other members of the household distract you while you are working?
в—†
Will you have adequate and uninterrupted access to phone lines, power
points and so on?
42
Where to Work / 43
Ideally, you will want to have a separate room, away from the passage and
noise of other occupants (including pets), which you can use as your office.
A basement or a loft would be a good choice, as would a disused garage,
outhouse or shed, provided the space is dry, warm and secure.
Make sure your chosen office area has plenty of headroom, good light,
power sockets and so on. You may well want to install a separate phone line
or two, for your answer-phone and fax.
If you cannot have a room to yourself, try to make sure your work
space is in a quiet corner of one that is not used during the day. That
space under the stairs might seem like a good spot to put your desk,
but how will you cope with people traipsing back and forth behind you?
Mixing work with family life
Unless you live alone, when working from home you will have to consider
the impact other members of your household will have on your business and
vice versa. If the other occupants are away during the day you should have
less to worry about. But what if you have to work late? And will they mind
you working when they have a day off?
Working at home requires serious discipline, both for you and for other
members of the household. Just as you will need to resist the temptation to
extend your breakfast or lunch break with some �research’ in front of the
telly, so you will need to stress to others that you cannot be disturbed when
working.
This can be incredibly difficult. Some people refuse to believe that work
can happen outside an office and, no matter how busy you are, will gravitate
towards you with cups of tea and requests for �a quick chat’ that can end up
robbing you of precious time.
Rebuffing such approaches can put a strain on relationships; you will need
to learn how to handle situations diplomatically so you can make it clear
when you cannot be disturbed without causing offence.
Some home workers get round the problem by adopting a closed-door
44 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
policy or similar ploy to indicate that they cannot be interrupted. Others
have an �off-limits’ rule during given hours of the day. It can be worth
talking to people you know who work from home to find out how they
cope.
These issues are not just about the effects other people will have on your
business. Studies by BT, the telecommunications company, on �remote working’
(in other words, working away from an employer’s office) have shown that while
people who work from home usually have an increased quality of life, the quality
of life of their partners can suffer.
Much of this is because it is easy for home workers to end up doing overtime,
eating into what other members of the family consider �rest time’. This is
something you may need to weigh up when considering where to work.
Dealing with interruptions
No matter how well you manage to separate your home–office environment
from the rest of your home, there will always be occasions when you have to
deal with unexpected interruptions. Here are a few tips on what to do:
в—†
In the first place, if you definitely need uninterrupted peace and quiet for
a particular length of time, for example to take an important call, it is
worth warning other members of the household beforehand.
в—†
If you need to take a break from your work, save any documents that you
are working on at your computer, even if you expect to be away for only
a moment or two. (In fact, it is a good habit to save your work at regular
intervals anyway, perhaps at every paragraph or two in the case of
important documents, as computer crashes have a nasty habit of coming
unannounced.)
в—†
Also make a note of the time, if you are charging clients on an hourly or
day-rate basis.
в—†
If you are in the middle of an important train of thought or piece of
research, it is a good idea to jot down a few notes to help you pick up
where you left off when you get back.
Where to Work / 45
в—†
Keep an eye on how long your break lasts and bear in mind any
time-sensitive projects you might have in hand.
You are your own boss, so how you organise your time is up to you. If you need
to make time during the day to cope with household commitments, for example
because you have a family, you can catch up with work later on, or even decide
to cut down the amount of work you take on. However, if you are to provide a
professional service then you will need to make sure that outside influences do
not stop you from meeting clients’ deadlines in good time.
If you find �occasional interruptions’ are eating into your work time,
you may need to alter the ground rules you have established with
other members of the household, or change the way you work.
Providing a professional image
One constraint of using your home as your office is that it is not likely to be
an ideal place in which to hold meetings with clients. This should not
usually present a problem. Most clients will be more than happy to see you
on their own premises (after all, it saves them travelling). Failing that, a pub
or restaurant can be a good place for informal meetings.
If you really need to impress a client, for example in a pitch for a large
project, you might want to consider hiring a meeting room in a hotel or
suchlike (here again, however, visiting your client’s offices is likely to a
better idea).
Providing a serious, professional front extends to areas like background
noise during phone calls. Quiet music might be acceptable; the sound of a
television is unlikely to inspire confidence (and in any case is likely to impair
your ability to listen to the caller). With unavoidable background noise
(such as the kind my children often create when I am on the phone), the
only solution may be to come clean and explain that you are working from
home.
46 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Financial and legal considerations
If you work from home then you are entitled to offset a proportion of your
household costs, such as electricity and heating, against tax. The taxman will
accept an estimate of the amount of energy costs which can be attributed to
your work.
So, for example, if you have four rooms in your house (excluding
bathrooms, closets and so on) and use one for work, you could claim a
quarter of your gas and electricity bills against tax. The same goes for your
telephone bill, if your phone is used for business and personal calls. Be sure
not to over-claim, however; your accountant will be able to advise on what
proportion of costs is likely to be acceptable. (For more on this, see the next
chapter.)
On the legal side, it is wise to make sure that your working from home
does not invalidate any insurances or tenancy or mortgage agreements.
Provided they are notified, most insurers, landlords and lenders are
unlikely to have a problem with you working from home, as long as you
make it clear you will not be receiving customers on the premises. In some
cases, your insurance premiums might even go down because you can claim
to be at home all day.
3. Working in an Office
If you are unable or prefer not to work from home, for example because you
are going into business with others, then you will probably need to rent or
buy some form of office space. Since buying an office outright is probably
beyond the means of most budding copywriters, I shall just concentrate here
on the rental options, which are as follows . . .
Leasing space
Leasing office space is a relatively straightforward affair but can be quite a
serious undertaking if you are just starting out, not least because you might
have to stump up a hefty deposit or be tied into a lengthy or inflexible lease
agreement.
Where to Work / 47
Basically, I would not recommend leasing space as a start-up unless you
are pretty sure of how much money you can make and can agree generous
terms with the landlord. It can also help if you can split the risk with
someone else, provided you are certain their income is guaranteed.
Taking out a lease can represent a major overhead and it is worth
checking your figures, or getting them checked by an accountant, to
make sure your business will be able to support it. You might
also want to get some legal advice on the lease
agreement before signing it.
Things worth considering if you are going to lease an office include:
в—†
What will happen if the number of people in your business goes up or
down?
в—†
Is the office suitable for the equipment you need, such as computers and
printers?
в—†
How secure is it?
в—†
Is it fit for purpose? (In other words, does the building comply with fire
regulations? Was it designed as an office, or has it been adapted? and so
on.)
в—†
How easy is it to get to?
в—†
What is the state of the common parts of the building?
Sub-letting or sharing a lease
Sub-letting office space or sharing a lease with another company is probably
a better idea than taking out your own lease, for a number of reasons.
в—†
You will probably be able to agree better terms.
48 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
You may be able to share furniture, equipment and services with the
other business.
в—†
You may be able to carry out work for the other business.
в—†
If the other business’s services are complementary to yours, you may be
able to refer clients to it, and vice versa.
в—†
You will be more likely to experience the buzz of a traditional office.
в—†
The other business may be able to help yours with finance or services.
Against these attractions, it is likely that you will have to sacrifice some
flexibility as the future of your business will, to some extent, be tied into that of
the business you are sub-letting from or sharing with.
The success of a sub-letting or shared lease arrangement often depends
on how well you get on with the business you are sharing with. Having
too much or too little in common may be detrimental.
Serviced offices
Another low-risk option is to take out what is referred to as a �licence fee’
covering serviced office space from a specialist company. The leader in this
field is Regus (www.regus.com); others may be more competitive, but you
may find that published rates are open to negotiation.
There is a number of reasons for considering serviced offices:
в—†
The up-front cost for a serviced office is likely to be much less than it
would be for finding your own space, as furniture, computer cabling and
so on are all provided.
в—†
The deposit is normally two months’ rent, compared with up to six
months’ for a standard lease.
в—†
Some companies even offer a service which will allow you to work out
the break-even point of taking out a licence fee with them.
Where to Work / 49
в—†
With a serviced office you can move in, set up and expand with a
minimum of hassle. Some companies even have smart phone systems that
can make your business appear multi-national in hours.
в—†
You can often rent �space’ on the serviced office company’s computer
server, which, along with cabling, can save you a lot on technology costs.
в—†
If anything goes wrong with the building, from a blocked sink to a
breakdown in the air conditioning, you do not have to worry about
getting it fixed.
Basic serviced offices have everything you would expect to find if you were
working in a big company, from receptionists to photocopiers.
Top operators also have large conference rooms, video-conferencing
systems and the ability for you to use other buildings in their network for
work while travelling country-wide or internationally.
The bottom line with all of them, however, is that they let you focus on
running your business.
Like most things, though, you pay for what you get. So you might
want to shop around to see if you find a deal that provides just the
things you think you will need.
4. Working From Client Premises
It is not unusual for clients to expect you to work from their premises, for
example because you need to be in close contact with other members of a
team or because the documents they need you to work on cannot be
accessed outside their organisation.
Obviously this gets round having to find a place to work and, if you are
working on the client’s computer systems, saves wear and tear on your own
equipment. Against this, your travel costs are likely to go up (and you may
not be able to recharge them) and you will be wasting money if you are
paying for office space of your own.
50 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
From the outset, then, it is probably a good idea to establish whether
your clients expect you to do most of your work from your own premises,
or on theirs.
IR35
An important factor to bear in mind when working from client premises is
whether you will fall foul of an HMRC (Her Majesty’s Revenue and
Customs) regulation called IR35, to do with whether workers providing
personal services should be classed as employees or not.
HMRC introduced this legislation in 2000 as a way of closing a tax
avoidance loophole, used mainly by IT workers, whereby employees would
leave their jobs to set up their own business, then carry on doing their old
work under the guise of �independent consultants’. The benefit to
consultants is that, as I will show in the next chapter, it is possible to pay
less tax as a sole trader or by owning a company than one would as an
employee. In addition, the employer pays less as it does not have to cover
costs such as National Insurance.
IR35 was an attempt to clamp down on this practice by extending the
definition of �employee’ to cover many workers who are not on the payroll
and who, under the regulations, would henceforth have to be paid under
the Pay As You Earn (PAYE) scheme, like traditional employees.
The problem is that the extended definition of what constitutes an
employee is extremely fuzzy.
The precedents set by the small (but increasing) number of cases that
have been contested in court have much to do with where, when and how
long you work for a particular client. Although investigations so far have
mostly been restricted to workers in IT, IR35 extends to other providers of
personal services, potentially including copywriters.
For the record, some of the criteria used by the HMRC to determine if
you should be deemed an employee under IR35 include whether:
в—†
you generally work for one client at a time, rather than having a number
of contracts
Where to Work / 51
в—†
you work set hours, or a given number of hours a week or a month
в—†
you have to do the work yourself rather than being able to hire someone
else to do the work for you
в—†
someone can tell you at any time what to do or when and how to do it
в—†
you are paid by the hour, week or month
в—†
you get overtime pay
в—†
you work at the premises of the person you work for, or at a place or
places he or she decides.
The nature of an independent copywriter’s work means that the answer to
many of these questions may be �yes’, which, according to HMRC, means you
would theoretically be an employee and have to be paid under PAYE.
Will this make a difference? It all depends on how much money you earn.
If your earnings from a single client are under the higher tax rate threshold,
getting paid via PAYE is unlikely to be much of a worry. It might even be
advantageous, as at least you will be assured of receiving your money
promptly.
On the other hand, if your income from a client is enough to �attract’ (as
accountants say) higher rate tax, then being on PAYE will give you little or
no scope to avoid it, so you could end up paying the tax man more than
you need to. In such a case you might well want to review your working
practices to make sure you fall outside the IR35 rules. To do this, you may
need to prove that:
в—†
you have a number of customers at the same time
в—†
you have the final say in how you do the work for the client
в—†
you can make a loss on the contract
в—†
you provide the main items of equipment (computers, fax machines and
so on) you need to do the job for the client, not just the small items, like
pens and stationery, that many employees provide for themselves
52 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
you are free to hire other people on your own terms to do the work you
have taken on and if you do, they will be paid out of your own pocket
в—†
you have to correct unsatisfactory work in your own time and at your
own expense.
As you may have gathered, IR35 is a complex and evolving area. If you
are uncertain about where you stand, or what you might need to do
under given circumstances, I would suggest speaking to your
accountant, if you have one, or talking to your client’s personnel
or payroll department. There is also more information on
the HMRC website, www.hmrc.gov.uk/ir35
5
Book Keeping for Copywriters
If you are typical of most copywriters, then this is probably the chapter you
are dreading to read. A writer trades in words, not numbers, and the
majority of copywriters that I have come across tend to view figures with
suspicion, as something difficult to understand and potentially dangerous. It
is not uncommon for otherwise gifted copywriters to completely ignore
things like financial records and taxes, possibly in the hope they will go
away. Needless to say, the result of this course of action (or inaction) is
usually disastrous.
It need not be that way. While I would hesitate to call book keeping
�fun’, it is usually a pretty straightforward affair at the level of the average
self-employed trader. For the difficult bits, like filling in your tax return, you
can hire an accountant for a few hundred pounds a year. And running a cash
book can be a useful way of keeping track of how much money you are
making (which can be gratifying when things are going well).
1. Where Do You Start?
There are several things you need to do fairly soon after you set up your
business; certainly within the first couple of months or so.
в—†
Get in touch with your local tax office (you can find it in the Yellow
Pages under �HM Revenue and Customs’) within three months of
starting and tell them you are self-employed (there is a ВЈ100 penalty for
not doing so). They will give you a Unique Tax Reference (UTR)
number, which some clients may demand to see before taking
you on.
53
54 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
If you are setting up a limited company, you need to register it with
Companies House (see www.companieshouse.co.uk for more details).
They will tell about how to file financial records relating to the
business.
в—†
If you are thinking of using an accountant, now is a good time to find
one so they can talk to you about how to run your accounts, and advise
you on other areas of setting up your business such as choosing a simple
accounting software package, if you need one.
в—†
If you have decided to register for VAT (see Chapter 2), you should get
in touch with HMRC. Again, you can find the details for your local
office in your phone book, under �VAT’.
в—†
Get into the habit of asking for receipts whenever you spend money on
anything vaguely connected with your business, from stationery to
computers, and keep them somewhere safe.
2. How Do Accounts Work?
You will hopefully be relieved to know that I am not an accountancy expert.
You do not need to be one either. If you have run a business before, or even
been involved in one on the financial side, then you probably have a good
idea of basic accounting already. In which case, you can skip this section
(and possibly this chapter) as it applies to people who have no previous
experience and/or knowledge of putting together accounts for their
business.
At the risk of stating the very obvious, here is how your finances should
work.
в—†
You charge clients money for the work you do, usually by means of an
invoice, and this provides income for your business. Copies of your
invoices, plus a note of when they were paid, form the basis of your
income records.
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 55
в—†
You also spend money on behalf of your business, on travel, equipment,
stationery and so on. Generally your accountant and/or the taxman will
need to see a receipt as proof of expenditure.
в—†
You need to keep a record of all your income and all your expenditure in
a cash book which contains the date and amount of each transaction,
along with how it was paid and what it was for.
в—†
At the end of your business year (which runs for 12 months but need not
be the same as the calendar year) the sum of all expenses which are
allowable against tax (which is not necessarily all your expenses) is
deducted from the sum of your income.
в—†
What is left is your net profit. The taxman works out how much you owe
in tax based on this amount.
в—†
The way you are taxed depends on what type of business you run: sole
trader, partnership or limited company.
в—†
As a sole trader, if you want, you can get the taxman to work out how
much you owe. To do so, you need to submit a tax return by 30
September following the year being assessed and tick the section saying
you want the tax calculation done for you.
в—†
Alternatively you can work out the amount you owe yourself (or, more
likely, get your accountant to work it out). In this case, you can complete
the return online or get your accountant to complete a tax return and
submit it to HMRC by 31 January following the year being assessed.
в—†
The taxman will then check the calculation and send you a bill.
в—†
But you must pay what you think you owe (according to your own or
your accountant’s calculations) by 31 January following the end of your
financial year, regardless of whether you have had a bill or not.
в—†
If you do not pay, you could be liable for a fine plus an interest charge
on the amount the taxman thinks you owe.
56 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
HMRC will assume your tax bill is going to stay the same in the
following year and ask you for two payments on account, each of half the
total.
в—†
The first payment on account is due on 31 January following the year of
assessment – the same date as your tax bill is due.
в—†
What this means is that your first tax bill will not just be for your first
year’s tax; it will be for one and a half times that amount.
в—†
The second payment on account is due by 31 July. At the end of your
next financial year, the amount you have paid on account is offset against
what you owe in tax. So if your tax bill has gone down, you may get a
repayment from HMRC. If there is a significant decrease in your taxable
profits you can ask the taxman to postpone the second payment on
account.
в—†
If your business is a partnership, you (or your accountant) will also need
to prepare a partnership tax return which shows how much taxable
income was made by the partnership and how it was split between each
partner. Each partner still needs to complete a tax return.
в—†
In other respects, partnership finances are similar to those of a sole
trader. Payments are calculated in the same way and due at the same
times.
в—†
If you run a limited company and it falls within the Companies Act limits
of a small company (which it almost certainly will, or else you would not
be reading this book for advice), your accounts need to be prepared in
the statutory format probably by an accountant. A copy must be sent to
Companies House within 14 days of them being approved by the board
of the company and within ten months of the company’s year-end.
Failure to do this is an offence for which directors can be held liable, and
prosecuted.
в—†
A limited company is liable for tax separately to its owners and
employees. Corporation tax is a complex affair and it is always worth
getting expert advice in relation to it.
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 57
в—†
Value Added Tax is levied by HMRC and is completely separate from
income and corporation tax. There are more details on how to deal with
it later in this chapter.
в—†
National Insurance Contributions (NICs) are yet another levy which you
have to be aware of. If you are self-employed, either as a sole trader or
within a partnership, then you have to pay Class 2 NICs, which are a
fixed amount payable quarterly or monthly by direct debit, plus Class 4
NICs, which are calculated as a percentage of your profits between set
limits.
3. Your Financial Year
It goes without saying that your financial year lasts 12 months. But when it
starts and ends is up to you. You can simply take the beginning of your
financial year to be the date you start your business. Or, if it is more
convenient, you can choose to complete accounts for part of a year in your
first year, up to whenever you want your financial year to start, and then file
a return every 12 months thereafter.
Probably the best reason for changing your financial year is so that it fits
in with the UK tax year, which runs from 6 April to 5 April. (Corporation
tax, however, is based on a financial year that runs from 1 April to 31
March.) The beginning of the tax year is when the chancellor usually
chooses to make changes to tax legislation, so adopting the same calendar
will at least prevent you from having to take account of different laws in a
single year.
4. Receipts
Keep all receipts to do with your business. Get into the habit of asking for
receipts whenever you buy things, from computers to biros. When you
travel, keep your bus or train ticket in lieu of a receipt. If you work from
home, hang on to household bills for gas, electricity and so on. Keep your
phone bill, your mobile bill and credit card statements listing
58 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Cash book: receipts for June
Date
Customer
12/6
27/6
Totals
Notes
Other
Sales
Cash
Bloggs Industries
Payment of inv. No. 237
105.10
1,225.00
1,330.10
Bloggs.com
Payment of inv. No. 231
3.38
500.00
503.38
108.48 1,725.00 0.00
Bank
1,833.48
Fig. 1. Cash book entry example: receipts page.
business-related expenses like internet service provider subscriptions. Keep
all receipts. Got that?
The reason is that these will all add up to reduce your net profit, and
hence your tax bill. Or, look at it another way: every expense that you incur
and which you cannot show a receipt for will be considered profit. And you
will still be taxed on it.
File your receipts in date order and enter the details into your cash book.
You can buy ruled books for this purpose if you want to keep handwritten
records, but in this day and age you are more likely to use a computer
spreadsheet such as Microsoft Excel. An example of how pages in your cash
book might look are shown in Figures 1 and 2.
Unfortunately, you cannot claim all your business expenses against tax.
And not all expenses are offset in the same way. Items which will last for a
long period of time, such as computers, computer software and office
furniture, are treated as capital expenses. Unlike the running costs of your
business, for things like travel or stationery, these are spread out over several
years. So, for example, you will not be able to offset the entire price of your
shiny new computer against tax in the year you buy it (although, if you are
registered for VAT you will be able to reclaim this entire element of the
cost). At the time of writing, there is a tax concession called First Year
Capital Allowances for small businesses which allows you to set off 50 per
cent of the cost of IT equipment against your profits in the year of
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 59
purchase. However, HMRC might withdraw or reduce this concession in
the future.
The main items you can claim against tax are as follows.
в—†
Staff costs, whether you employ people on a full-time basis or hire
people to help you out once in a while. You can also pay your partner if
they help out with your business, for example with book keeping. If your
partner does not have other employment, this can be a handy way of
cutting your tax bill as you can use up their basic tax allowance (the
amount of money each person is entitled to earn free of tax).
в—†
Premises costs, such as electricity, gas, rent or mortgage interest and
telephone rental. If you work from home, the taxman will expect you to
claim a proportion of your annual premises costs that reflects the amount
your home is used for business. So, for example, if you have five rooms
in your home (including any room where you could fit a desk, such as
kitchens, living rooms and bedrooms, but excluding bathrooms), and
work entirely from home, you would be justified in claiming up to a fifth
of your household bills against tax. Commonly, a set weekly amount is
used for calculating a �use of home as office’ charge.
в—†
You can also claim back repairs to your office space, even if it is just a
room in your house. Be aware, though, this does not mean you can
offset the cost of redecorating your entire home. As with other
household expenses, the taxman will allow only a proportion of costs that
can be attributed directly to your workplace. Note, also, that repairs are
not the same as improvements. The latter, according to the HMRC, will
increase the value of your workspace and, if you own it, will mean you
could be liable for capital gains tax on a proportion of the profits if and
when you sell it.
в—†
General administrative expenses incurred in the day-to-day running of
your business. These will include phone bills; postage, photocopying and
stationery; couriers, if you use them; the cost of magazines, newspapers
and other reference materials; subscriptions to publications and services
60 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Fig. 2. Cash book entry example: payments page.
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 61
Fig. 2.
(cont.)
62 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
like internet access; insurance costs; equipment repairs and leasing; and
anything else you buy for your office.
в—†
Car expenses, such as petrol, motor insurance, membership of motoring
organisations, or hire charges, can also be allowed, although the taxman
will presume that there will be some personal mileage. If you use your
car for work a lot, keep a record of business mileage and work out,
realistically, what proportion of the total mileage this represents. Use this
percentage to calculate the business element of your car expenses. If you
are VAT registered and you reclaim all the input VAT on all your petrol
expenses you will be liable to pay a set quarterly petrol scale charge
to HMRC, to cover any private mileage. Alternatively, you could use
HMRC’s set business mileage rates of 40p per mile for the first 10,000
miles and 25p per mile thereafter.
в—†
All travel costs, including bus, train, taxi and plane fares and overnight
stays in hotels or guesthouses, as long as they are directly related to
business. Similarly, if you travel around the country or abroad and the
trip involves an element of work, you can claim expenses that reflect that
element. You can also claim meals as long as they are necessarily a part of
work-related travel. One criterion I have heard of to judge this is that
they have to be incurred outside of a five mile radius from your normal
place of work.
в—†
Promotional costs incurred in advertising your business. This can
include the cost of setting up a website, for example. Unfortunately,
however, one of the major expenses you are likely to come across in
promoting your business – the cost of networking, lunching with or
entertaining clients and contacts – cannot be claimed against tax. Also,
no input VAT can be reclaimed on entertaining.
в—†
Professional costs, including accountants’ fees (your accountant will
probably be quick to point out that their payment is tax-deductible) and
those of lawyers, if you use them.
в—†
Finance expenses, such as charges and interest on business bank
accounts, credit cards, hire purchase or loans, but not capital repayments.
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 63
в—†
Your pension payments. You would not normally include these in your
cash book, but they should be entered on your tax return. Whatever you
do, it is important you set some money aside for your pension if you
intend to stay in business for any length of time, as no one else will. A
stakeholder pension is likely to be the best option because it is cheap to
run and simple to set up. For more advice, speak to your independent
financial adviser, if you have one. You can also get information from
financial websites like The Motley Fool (www.fool.co.uk).
Things you cannot claim against tax, no matter how vital they may be
to the livelihood of your business, include entertainment, food and
drink (except for subsistence incurred in business-related travel) and
gifts, unless they carry your company logo.
5. Invoices
Your invoices should show the following details:
в—†
Your trading name and, if you run a registered company, your company
number.
в—†
Your address and other contact details, such as phone number, fax and
email address.
в—†
The date the invoice was issued.
в—†
An invoice number. You can use any numbering system you want but it
is a good idea to have one that allows you to identify the client, month
and year each invoice relates to. HMRC usually requires some sort of
sequentially numbered system so it is easy to see if invoices have been
omitted.
в—†
The date the work refers to. This will usually be the date a project is
finished and delivered to the client, unless you have an agreement to be
paid in advance.
64 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Invoice
Bloggs Copywriting Service
100 Any Road
Anytown
30 May 200X
Invoice no. 010
To:
Any Communications
200 Another Road
Anytown
For:
Freelance services in May
5 days @ ВЈ200 per day:
ВЈ1,000.00
Plus expenses – train fare
ВЈ10.00
Fig. 3. Invoice example.
в—†
Details of the work carried out. If you are being paid by the day or by
the word, then put the total number of days or words and the rate of
pay.
в—†
Details of any costs or disbursements you are recharging to the client.
Some clients may be happy for you to bill them for any costs incurred on
their behalf, such as phone calls or travel. Others may expect you to
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 65
shoulder these costs within your fee. (For simplicity’s sake, I normally
include phone calls and other basic costs in my fee, but recharge larger
expenses such as taxi or train fares.)
в—†
The total amount due.
в—†
Your terms. Most clients will expect 30 days and are unlikely to pay any
earlier, but sticking to these terms at least gives you a good excuse to
chase accounts departments that you fear may be delaying payment.
в—†
If you are VAT registered, you need to include your VAT number on
each invoice. You also need to show a subtotal of all fees and costs, then
the VAT due on the subtotal, which, for copywriting services, will be at
the standard rate of 17.5 per cent at the time of writing.
You may also want to include mention of any prompt payment discounts
(see �Managing cash flow’ below) and your bank account details, for clients
that pay electronically through the Banks Automated Clearing System
(BACS). An example of an invoice is shown in Figure 3. You will be able to
get others in leaflets from your local HMRC office.
6. Managing Cash Flow
Managing cash flow is simple: get money in as soon as you can and hang on
to it for as long as possible. Although this might not seem too important
when you have plenty of projects on the go and are working flat out to meet
deadlines, it is a crucial task in running a business. Your clients will certainly
take it seriously (as well they might, since cash flow problems can cripple the
healthiest of companies), with the knock-on effect that you might have to
wait a lot longer to get paid than you expect. There is a number of things
you can do to keep on top of your cash flow.
в—†
Invoice early. If not as soon as you finish a job, then at least by the end
of the month.
66 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
If you are working on a project that will take some time to complete, ask
to be paid in instalments – every month, for example.
в—†
If you have any reason to suspect your client might take a long time to
pay (or not pay at all), you may want to insist on payment or
part-payment up front.
в—†
Give clients an incentive to pay up quickly, such as a five per cent
discount on invoices settled within seven days. Smaller, owner-managed
companies often appreciate this kind of deal.
в—†
Keep an eye out for invoices that have not been paid after 30 days and
do not be afraid to chase up settlement. Often a polite call or email
asking whether the invoice has been cleared for payment will be enough
to prompt a cheque.
в—†
Be prepared to step up the pressure if you have still not been paid after a
couple of months. Many copywriters worry that hounding their clients
will spoil the relationship they have built up and jeopardise their chances
of future work. But you have to ask yourself what value there is in a
client who will not pay you.
в—†
As a last resort, consider demanding interest on any late payment (which
you are legally entitled to do) or threatening to take the matter to the
small claims court. I have yet to hear of a copywriter actually making
good on such a threat, but if you ever have to, then bear in mind that it
will probably help your case if you have kept copies of all relevant
correspondence.
в—†
Pay cheques into your account the day you get them.
в—†
Take time to find out how you can smooth out the payment process with
your client. Many companies, for example, have problems processing
invoices unless they quote the number of a purchase order raised by the
person making the order.
в—†
Some clients may want you to add your bank details to their supplier list
so they can pay you electronically. This is good. If you are on the system
you are much more likely to get paid on time.
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 67
в—†
I personally do not advocate delaying payment to your own suppliers
unless you really have to; after all, you may well have to ask them for
favours in the future. But do take advantage of any opportunity to hang
on to your cash, for example by paying for a new computer in
instalments.
If all the above seems like too much hassle, consider the following story
regarding a copywriter friend of mine, Gareth Llewellyn. In the late 1990s
Gareth started writing occasional features for a website whose managers he
got on with particularly well. The work increased and Gareth concentrated
on meeting deadlines rather than sending out invoices. Then the website
started to run into trouble and Gareth suddenly realised he was owed quite
a lot of money – around £5,000, which he was by then relying on to pay his
tax bill – and had yet to see any of it. In the end, it was over a year before
the bill was settled. �The bank and the taxman were unhappy with me to say
the least,’ he says. �The principle is, don’t do the next piece of work until
the first is paid for.’
There is some good news, however. Copywriting businesses are
relatively immune to cash flow problems because their costs are fairly
low (or, to put it another way, the margins are very high).
7. Choosing an Accountant
You do not need an accountant for your business, but you may well find it
helps, particularly if you anticipate making a fair amount of money. A good
accountant should be able to repay their fee by making suggestions that can
help cut your tax bill, and will be able to advise you on other areas of your
business, too. He or she can also make sure your tax returns are correct and
let you know which allowances you can claim for.
The level of service you will get from your accountant will usually depend
on how much you pay them. You should be able to find someone who will
check your books and fill out your tax return for around ВЈ500 a year, plus
68 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
VAT. For an extra (generally small) fee, an accountancy practice may be able
to put together your books from your receipts and other basic information,
although you may feel it is a better idea to run your own cash book as a way
of keeping an eye on your finances.
One thing that is worth bearing in mind if you decide to take on an
accountant is whether they have any relevant experience in your industry.
Effectively, your accountant will be responsible for negotiating on behalf of
your business with the tax man, so it helps if they know in advance what
kinds of allowances HMRC will make.
Ask other copywriters, if you know any, who they would recommend.
Alternatively, look for ads in magazines like The Freelance, published by the
London Freelance Branch of the National Union of Journalists, or UK Press
Gazette.
If you cannot find someone who already handles people in your line of
business, do not despair. Any good accountant should still be able to help
you save tax. However, it is still worth shopping around to make sure you
find an adviser you feel you can get on with. If all else fails, your local
Yellow Pages should give you some names to get started with.
8. Filing Your Own Tax Returns
There is nothing to stop you filling out your own tax returns. If your
income is fairly low, say because you work only part-time, and your accounts
are straightforward, it is probably safe to assume you will not save much by
hiring an accountant.
The easiest option under these circumstances is to get the tax man to
work out how much you owe, by filling out the forms provided by HMRC.
You need to return these before 30 September each year.
If you decide to be your own accountant, you will generally find HMRC
is happy to help and advise you on what you can and cannot allow against
tax. You may also find that much of what is allowed is based on negotiation
with the authorities, rather than any hard and fast rules.
It is also fairly simple to register with the Government Gateway
(www.gateway.gov.uk) with a user name and password. You will get a PIN
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 69
and then be able to complete your tax return online at www.hmrc.gov.uk.
When you have entered all your details the program calculates the tax you
owe. You can save the information and go back to it as often as you like if
you need to change figures or add further details. Print it out and make sure
you submit it by 31 January.
9. National Insurance
How you pay National Insurance Contributions (NICs) will depend on how
you have set up your business.
If you run a limited company, you will pay yourself a monthly wage under
Pay As You Earn and NICs will be added to this as with any other
employee.
If you are self employed as a sole trader or a partner in a business, you
usually pay two different types of NIC, called Class 2 and Class 4. Class 2
NICs are set at a flat rate per month which you can pay by monthly direct
debit or quarterly bill. Bills are sent to you automatically after you register as
self-employed with the tax office. Class 4 NICs are paid on top of Class 2
NICs if your profits are over a certain amount (around ВЈ5,255 a year) up to
around ВЈ34,840 (these bands are usually increased every year so check with
HMRC). The amount you pay is worked out as a percentage (eight per cent
at the time of writing) of your profits between the upper and lower limits.
If you want or need to find out more about NICs, including exemptions,
there is a useful guide called National Insurance Contributions for
Self-employed People with Small Earnings that you can download from
www.hmrc.gov.uk or get hold of from your tax office by quoting leaflet
reference CF10.
10. VAT
Value Added Tax (VAT) is a completely separate tax from income tax. You
have to register for VAT if your turnover is more than ВЈ64,000 a year, but
can choose to register voluntarily at less than this amount.
70 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
VAT account
Period from 1 January to 31 March, 2008
VAT deductible – input tax
ВЈ
VAT payable – output tax
January
54.38
January
February
62.66
February
March
26.59
March
Total
143.63
VAT allowable on EC
Total
VAT due on EC acquisitions
acquisitions
1,025.23
781.32
2,351.74
–
Net understatement of output
from previous returns
–
tax on previous returns
Bad debt relief
–
Annual adjustment: Direct
Calculation scheme
Sub-total
143.63
Sub-total
Less:
Less:
VAT on credits received from
VAT on credits allowed to
Total tax deductible
545.19
–
Net over-claim of input tax
suppliers
ВЈ
–
143.63
customers
Total tax to pay
Less total tax deductible
–
–
2,351.74
–
2,351.74
143.63
Payable to Revenue and Customs 2,208.11
Fig. 4. VAT account example.
Once registered, you can claim back the VAT you pay on supplies,
provided you have a VAT receipt for them. You also have to add VAT to
any supplies you make in the UK, which includes all fees and expenses you
incur on behalf of a client. The VAT on copywriting is levied at the standard
rate, 17.5 per cent at the time of writing. Your invoices will need to show
Book Keeping for Copywriters / 71
your VAT number, and every three months you will have to prepare a VAT
account, which is a short summary showing how much money you are
claiming back and how much you have added on. (Since 2002 there has also
been an optional flat-rate VAT scheme allowing companies with a turnover
of up to ВЈ150,000 to calculate their VAT payment as a given percentage,
9.5 per cent for advertising, of their total taxable turnover including VAT at
17.5 per cent. To find out more, ask your VAT office for a copy of Notice
733 or download it from www.hmrc.gov.uk). You then need to complete a
VAT return and send it, along with the balance of your account, if you owe
money, to HMRC. An example of a quarterly VAT account is shown in
Figure 4.
If that all sounds a bit complicated, do not worry. Compared with income
tax, VAT is easy, and is something you would probably deal with yourself
rather than handing to your accountant. However, having to deal with it
every three months can still be a chore, so it is debatable how much benefit
you would get from registering if you do not really have to.
Do not worry about clients being put off by adding VAT to your
invoices. They will just reclaim the 17.5 per cent charged from HMRC,
as you do with your own receipts.
6
How to Find Work – and Keep It
1. Sources of Income
Where will your work come from? This question is not just one you will ask
yourself as you start out in business, but one that will present itself for as
long as you trade. It is quite likely that you will already have part of the
answer; a big contract that is yours for the taking, for example, or access to a
network of contacts that will assure you of a steady stream of jobs.
Most likely this promise of work is from an existing contact, someone you
already have a long-standing relationship with. This is where most of all
freelance copywriters’ work comes from. Even if you do not have any work
leads yet, you should be aware that they will mostly come from people you
know. These are the people who are always more likely to trust your abilities
and bear you in mind.XX
How else do you drum up business? Some options to consider are:
в—†
advertising your services
в—†
using the web to find work
в—†
working through agencies.
This chapter will guide you through the intricacies of each, plus
everything you need to know about pitching for business, from
presentations to pricing.
72
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 73
2. Networking
If your most likely source of income is going to be people you know (and,
believe me, it usually is) then go out and talk to them. Do not be afraid to
mention, brazenly, to anyone you know who might be interested, that you
will be happy to take care of their copywriting needs. Some of them might
even take up your offer. And if not, at least they will be more likely to
recommend you if they hear of a copywriting job elsewhere.
Running a copywriting business means you need to become an expert in
networking, the art of making and keeping contacts. There is a general,
although not universal, rule that the longer you work the easier it is to get
new work. This is because, over time, and assuming your work is of decent
enough quality, more and more people will come to know about you,
either directly or through referrals, and call upon you for help. In order to
get the ball rolling, you have to work hard at building up a network of
contacts.
This is why it is often easier to start up in business after working in a
company within the creative or media industries, where you are likely to
come across a number of individuals or organisations that could use your
services.
3. Advertising and Promotion
As a copywriter, I would be among the first to underline the power of
advertising and promotion. However, I have to say I do not know of anyone
who has been able to rely on these methods alone to drum up an income
from writing. Although I am willing to be proved wrong, my view is that
advertising and promotion can be used only to supplement networking as a
way of bringing in new work.
In addition, the success of any promotional campaign is largely based on
two factors: whether the medium you use reaches people who will be
interested in your service; and then whether the promotional message
appeals to these people and induces them to contact you for more
information. Finding what works is often a process of trial and error, so, in
74 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
theory, you can end up spending a lot of money without generating any
business.
For that reason, if you are going to try advertising I would recommend
looking at low-cost options that are guaranteed to reach a useful audience.
Here are some suggestions:
в—†
Try advertising in local business publications (rather than the local paper
or Yellow Pages) such as the Chamber of Commerce magazine.
в—†
Get listed on as many freelance directories as possible. A good one to
start with is at www.mad.co.uk, the marketing, advertising and design
website run by Centaur, publisher of Marketing Week, Precision
Marketing and other relevant trade magazines. (For more on promoting
yourself on the web, see below.)
в—†
Consider a direct mail campaign, writing to local businesses to offer your
services. Needless to say, your letter will need to have all the ingredients
of a great mail-shot: good writing, creativity and an alluring offer. There
are pointers to all this in Part 2 of this book.
Keep track of what you spend on promotion to make sure that
you are getting value for money out of it.
4. Finding Work on the Web
The internet is incredibly useful (some might say indispensable) as a research
tool for copywriting and it also generates a lot of copy work, both for
websites and other types of online media. This does not mean,
unfortunately, that the web can bring you work in abundance. You still have
to go out and get it using traditional methods. In my experience you can
put a lot of time, effort and money into promoting yourself on the internet
and get very little in return.
Broadly speaking, there are three ways in which you can use the web to
find work:
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 75
в—†
by simply using it as a research tool to identify potential clients
в—†
by signing up to online freelance work exchanges
в—†
by building your own website and trying to direct potential clients to it
via search engines, online advertising and other methods.
Using the web as a research tool
If there is one thing the internet is good for, then it has to be research. And
that applies as much to the work you are doing as to new sources of work.
At the very least, the web can give you access to up-to-date company
information such as addresses, phone numbers, emails, personnel and
organisational structures. Use it to find out more about companies you
think you could work for. Check their press pages to see if they employ a
PR agency that might be interested in your writing skills. Do they have a
customer magazine you could contribute to? Is it worth talking to the
marketing director about the content of the website itself? Does their job
application page mention whether they need freelance writing help?
Like any form of research, however, trawling the internet can be very
time-consuming unless you have a good idea of what you are looking for. I
would advise using web research as part of a wider, structured plan for
finding new business. You might decide, for example, to approach all the
direct mail companies listed in your local Yellow Pages, in which case
checking their websites would be a good way to get extra information about
their businesses.
Signing up to online work exchanges
A number of websites, such as E-lance, Guru and Smarterwork, act as
freelance work exchanges where clients can post projects for which
contractors then bid.
These exchanges are generally subscription-based and levy a percentage of
each transaction that is carried out on them (almost all have some inbuilt
secure payment system through which projects are paid for).
In theory, they sound like a great idea: just sign up and bid for as many
76 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
projects as you like, from the comfort of your office. Like many other great
dotcom concepts, however, these services are not quite so great in practice.
The problem is that while the concept is an obvious winner for freelancers of
all shapes, sizes and abilities, clients are perhaps more wary of putting
valuable projects out to tender to people about whom they have little or no
knowledge.
The upshot is that both the value and the number of copywriting projects
that get posted on these exchanges tend to be quite low and the number of
bidders is very high, often running to dozens. Faced with a barrage of offers
for help, often with widely ranging price tags, it seems likely that most
clients simply opt for those specialists who have been registered with the
website longest and thus can prove their ability on the basis of ratings
provided by other project owners. As a result, your chances of winning a bid
tend to be about ten to one at best; much less than you would find as a
copywriter in virtually any other competitive tendering situation.
Furthermore, to increase your chances of winning the work you may well be
tempted to try to undercut other bidders, so that even if you win the project
it is likely to be far from profitable.
As part of the research for this book I subscribed to one of these websites,
Smarterwork (www.smarterwork.com), and �pitched’ for at least one project
a month over the course of more than six months. Many of these projects
were exactly the kind of assignments that my regular clients were (and still
are) handing to me, without a pitch, on a routine basis. Despite spending a
lot of time pitching for projects on Smarterwork, however, I never made a
penny from the service.
In summary, while there is obviously no harm in signing up to online
work exchanges (provided they do not charge you too much upfront), I
would be very wary of assuming that you can make a living from them.
Not only that, but the paucity of projects on many of these exchanges
makes me wonder how many of them will still be around
by the time you read this chapter.
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 77
Using a website to promote yourself
Having your own website is far from a necessity in marketing your services,
but can be a handy way of giving people access to your credentials, and is
particularly likely to impress clients if you expect to do a lot of work for
companies in the technology sector.
Building a website is a big enough subject to warrant its own book; and,
happily, there are plenty of good reference books out there. Essentially, you
will need to go through the following steps:
в—†
Find somewhere that will house (or �host’) your site. If you use an
internet services provider (ISP) to surf the net then you will probably
find they provide a certain amount of space for personal websites.
However, there may be restrictions on the website addresses you can use.
For a more professional approach, you will probably want to have a
domain name of your own choosing, which you can buy (provided it has
not already been taken by someone else) from a domain name
registration service such as Netnames (www.netnames.com). These will
often be able to host your site, too, for a fee.
в—†
Get your site built. If you fancy the challenge, you can teach yourself
HTML (hypertext mark-up language, the code commonly used to put
together simple websites) and build your own. HTML is not too
complicated and you could pick up enough of a grasp of it to get going
in just a few weeks; a good book for beginners is Teach Yourself HTML
(IDC Books). Nowadays, however, there is a number of web authoring
software packages, such as Dreamweaver from Macromedia or Microsoft
FrontPage, that make the process even easier. Be aware, however, the
results can be somewhat formulaic. The other option is to get a friendly
website designer to help you out, or pay for them to do the job. They
may even be able to take care of domain name registration and hosting
for you.
в—†
Promote your site on search engines and via links to other sites. Web
marketing is another big area about which much has been written.
78 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Points worth bearing in mind with regard to websites are:
в—†
Having a website does not guarantee an immediate listing on search
engines. You can submit your site for a listing on each search engine
(details of how to do this are usually to be found on a link from the
search engine home page), although some may try to get you to
pay for this – but even then, there are no guarantees your site will be
listed.
в—†
If you are going to shell out for a search engine listing, you might be
better off putting the money into a service such as Google AdWords,
which effectively buys you a listing whenever a specified search phrase is
keyed in. And you pay only when someone clicks through the link.
в—†
A further, free way of improving your chances of being found on the web
is to get as many other sites as possible to link to yours. �Spiders’, the
programs used by search engines to map the internet, use links as routes
to find new sites, so your chances of getting a listing will be increased if
other websites are linked to yours. To do this, though, you will either
need to be friendly with a lot of webmasters or, better still, offer
something of value that others feel is worth linking to.
в—†
It goes without saying that no matter how simple or complex the design
of your site, the way it is written is crucial. For inspiration, I suggest you
key �copywriting services’ into a search engine and take a look at what
your competitors are saying. A couple of US copywriters whose sites
have impressed me are Ivan Levison (www.levison.com) and Nick
Usborne (www.nickusborne.com); there are many more out there worth
a look.
Make sure you read Chapter 13 – Writing for the Internet – before
drafting the copy for your website.
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 79
5. Working Through Agencies
Some recruitment agencies in the media and communications sectors have
units that specialise in placing freelancers. If you are starting out and/or do
not have a ready source of work, these can be a good bet, but bear in mind
the rates you can expect may be lower than those you could get from selling
your services directly, since the agency will take a cut of your fees. To track
down agencies that might be able to find work for you, take a look at the
display advertising sections of industry magazines such as Marketing,
Marketing Week and Campaign. Two agencies which operate sizeable
freelance departments are Stop Gap and Major Players. Bear in mind that
you will need to be able to give them a CV. Also, it may be difficult to find
recruitment companies that specialise in this kind of business outside
London.
Is freelance work advertised in the press?
Yes, but infrequently. And it is usually placed by agencies such as those
described above. In general, the cost of display advertising means companies
will not use it to recruit freelancers unless they are looking to fill a
long-term contract. Companies like the BBC often advertise contracts and
may occasionally offer jobs for copywriters. Other opportunities can arise
from time to time; the best places to look are in the weekly media section of
The Guardian newspaper and its associated website,
http://media.guardian.co.uk, plus the main marketing, media and creative
magazines and websites: Marketing, Marketing Week, Campaign,
www.campaignlive.com, www.brandrepublic.com, www.mad.co.uk and
others. You will probably have to subscribe to most of these, although the
cost is at least tax-deductible.
6. Drumming up Business over the Phone
In his book The Well-Fed Writer, US copywriter Peter Bowerman advocates
kick-starting your copywriting business with a sustained telemarketing
80 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
campaign. The idea is that if you introduce yourself to as many potential
clients as possible, some are eventually likely to give you work. Bowerman’s
technique involves setting yourself a target number of calls (say up to 50 a
day, perhaps culled from the business phone book), write a short
introductory script and keep plugging away to build up a list of contacts,
following up with mail shots and personal visits once a lead gets warm. I
cannot vouch for the approach personally since I have not used it. But what
I can say is that if you are hoping to get started in copywriting the work will
not come to you of its own accord. You have to go out there and get it. So
if you are at loose end, putting in calls to people who might be interested in
your services can only be a good thing.
7. Pitching, Impressing, Winning and Pricing
Whichever way you end up finding work, it is unlikely to be handed to you
on a plate. You will normally have to convince a prospective client that you
are up to the job and that your fee will fit their budget.
Putting together a portfolio
Generally speaking, the measure of how good you are is in the work you
have already done. Consequently, it is worth building up a portfolio and/or
a rГ©sumГ© of your work that you can send to prospective clients. (This is also
the sort of information you will want to include on your website, if you have
one.)
Try to make sure you get a copy of all the work you do, even down to the
smallest flyer. Few clients will want to see all of it, but you could frequently
be called upon to show your expertise in particular areas – writing
newsletters, for example – so it is useful to have more than one example to
hand. Your �portfolio’, therefore, should not be a collection of
randomly-assembled work, but a selection of the copy you have written that
you think is most suited to a particular job.
If you have a CV or rГ©sumГ©, it is similarly a good idea to tailor it to
different types of work. Also, remember that you are not looking for a
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 81
permanent job, so you should not structure the document in the same way
as you would write a traditional CV. Make sure it brings out your relevant
experience first and forget about making a big deal about which university
you went to or what your hobbies are. The important points are which
other clients you have worked for and what you have done for them.
In the early days it will obviously be difficult to come up with a dazzling
client list and a long list of projects, so feel free to include examples of
writing work you may have done in previous jobs or during any relevant
training courses.
If you are really stuck, it might be worth considering some free work for
friends and acquaintances, as a way of building up a portfolio. It might also
help you build up a network of contacts who can offer paying jobs.
Pitching for work
If you have worked in any form of marketing communications agency, then
you will probably be familiar with the process of pitching: brainstorming
ideas, putting together creative executions and a pitch document, rehearsing
the presentation and assembling a team to represent the business.
Thankfully, copywriters are rarely required to go to such lengths.
Copywriting work is (sadly) not normally high value enough to warrant a
major pitch and because freelance copywriters are fairly rare you are unlikely
to be facing much competition. At most, you are likely to be asked to meet
the client for a briefing, put forward some thoughts on your approach and
provide a quote for the work. Even so, you have to make sure you land the
job. So what do you do?
в—†
When you meet the client, show that you understand their business.
Dress appropriately: jeans might be OK for a dotcom but make sure you
are in a suit and tie if you are visiting a stock broker. Tell them about any
clients you have worked for in the same or related industries. Research
their industry, if you need to, so you are aware of the issues affecting
them. Make sure you can understand their jargon. (But if you do not,
then by all means ask for clarification. After all, you need to know what
82 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
you are talking about if you are going to make an educated guess at the
kind of work involved and how much it will cost.)
в—†
When you put forward a proposal, make sure it meets the client’s
requirements. Your idea may be creative, but will it have the desired
effect? Have you taken account of any sensitivities or issues regarding the
project? Is your proposed approach in keeping with tone of the
organisation issuing it?
в—†
When you quote for the work, is it an amount that the client will be
happy with? And will it be enough to justify your time and effort? (See
below for more on pricing.)
Taking a brief
Knowing how to take a brief is important if you want to win business and
write copy that meets your client’s expectations. Make sure you:
в—†
Ask lots of questions. Your client should do most of the talking, not you.
в—†
Narrow down, as far as possible, exactly what is involved: how many
pages, how many words, how many versions and so on.
в—†
Clarify how many re-writes might be expected.
в—†
Establish whether there are any concerns or sensitivities that you need to
be aware of. Pharmaceutical companies, for example, are very restricted
in what they can claim in advertising.
в—†
Find out when the work needs to be delivered.
в—†
Get an idea of the budget, if there is one.
в—†
Try out any �on the spot’ ideas you might have, to see whether the client
is likely to be in tune with particular lines of thinking.
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 83
Pricing
What level should you price yourself at? Answering this question is not
always easy. Go too high and clients might decide they cannot afford you.
Go too low and you could find you cannot pay the rent.
To work out what you could charge, you could try doing some
research. A good place to start might be by talking to specialist
agencies, signing up to an online work exchange (see above) or
looking at the fees posted on the National Union of Journalists’ website
(www.londonfreelance.org/feesguide/) to see what other people are asking
for. This may not help you much, however. There can be a tremendous
range of prices quoted for similar jobs, usually starting at ВЈ100 to ВЈ150 a
day and going up to two or three times that amount.
The reason fee levels vary so much is simple: it is entirely up to you to set
your price and you can go as high or as low as you want. You could,
theoretically, produce a figure off the top of your head. But there is a better
way.
The trick is not to ask yourself what price your work should be, but how much
it is worth – to you and to your client. This process can help you work out a
happy medium that will be right for both parties. Remember that, as your
own boss, you do not have to stick to a rigid price level and can chop and
change your rates, within reason, to suit particular circumstances.
To work out what a job is worth to you, first calculate what your
minimum fee level should be, with reference to the section on business plans
in Chapter 2. Ideally, you will want to earn a bit more than this, but you
may decide that some types of work are worth taking on at break-even
point, or even at a discount. If you are keen on journalism, for example, you
might feel happy about taking on news or feature writing commissions even
though they are paid at lower rates than other jobs. By the same token, be
realistic about what you quote for projects that look as if they will be
difficult or complicated.
Get into the knack, also, of working out roughly what the value of your
work is to your client. A rush job that needs to be done urgently over the
weekend is going to be worth more than a non-vital project that the client
could just as easily do in-house.
84 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Price is an important part of winning business, but it is always much better
to negotiate on the basis of value. If you keep worrying whether the level of
your fees is too high, you will probably end up under-pricing yourself.
Instead, ask yourself what justifies the fee that you think is fair. Can you
turn the work around extra fast? Have you got experience that your client
would value and that they would not easily find elsewhere? Will you manage
the project as well as writing copy? Your client will probably value things
like this and be prepared to pay a premium for them.
Conversely, if the client’s budget allows for less than you would
expect to be paid, it is usually better to see if you can cut the workload
accordingly rather than simply dropping your price. You might get the client
to take care of any necessary approvals, for example, or undertake just to
carry out the essential parts of the project until or unless extra cash is
available.
Another thing you might want to try is to use price negotiations to
improve your cash flow. If your client insists on a cheaper deal, for example,
offer a prompt payment discount if your bills are paid within seven days.
That way you both benefit.
There is a good reason why your client should appreciate you being
honest and forthright about pricing. If you are happy with what you are
being paid for a job, it will act as a good incentive for you to spend time on
it and do it well. Taking on low-paid work, however, could force you to cut
corners, which will benefit neither you nor your client in the long run. This
is why it is always better to work on the basis of value, rather than price.
Remember that the object of the negotiation process is not to get the
work at any price, but to get the work at a price which both
you and the client are happy with.
How do you charge?
There are two main ways of charging fees: by time (usually on an hourly or
day-rate basis) or by word count. The former is common in agency circles,
the latter is more characteristic of press journalism, but in effect the two are
How to Find Work – and Keep It / 85
interchangeable and you can use them both, even for different jobs with the
same client.
The important point is that the system you use works for you and your
client. A word count fee might be appropriate, for example, where you have
to deliver a document of a given length but are not sure how long it will
take. Working on a day-rate basis might be better if you are doing regular
work for a client, such as writing ads or press releases.
If in doubt, you might want to offer the client the choice of which type
of rate they prefer. You will however need to be sure that you are costing
the work on a roughly like-for-like basis using each method.
Two variations on these approaches are to quote a flat fee for a project, or
to ask for a retainer, both worked out on a rough calculation of the amount
of time the job is likely to take.
These methods are generally more appropriate to larger projects where
the client needs to be reassured you will stick to a particular budget.
Contracts
Whether you think you need a contract for a particular job really depends on
the amount of work involved and the level to which you feel you need to be
assured that it will continue. For a day or two’s copywriting it is hardly
worth the effort of getting a client to sign a contract. But if you are looking
at a project that will provide a significant portion of your income, and for
which you might have to turn down other work, you might well want to
take the precaution of drawing up a contract.
Engagement contracts are available from industry bodies like the National
Union of Journalists. Your client may have a standard contract they will use,
although beware that the small print might not be in your favour. For a very
large project, you might want to take on a lawyer specifically to draw up a
contract that gives you a measure of protection.
In most cases, however, the written communication between you and
your client, including briefs, proposals and quotations, would probably
constitute enough of a contract to be enforceable by law.
86 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
If you are in any doubt about the integrity of the company you are
dealing with, it is probably a good idea to set out any special terms
and conditions in writing before you start the work.
8. Ensuring Repeat Business
There is one sure-fire way of ensuring repeat business: do a good job the
first time round. If a client likes your work, they will come back to you for
more, and be happy to recommend your services to others. Your aim should
be to provide a service that is so valuable, you become indispensable.
As part of this process, it helps to develop a sense of the kinds of
pressures your client is working under. One of the best ways of securing
future work is to make your client look good in front of their bosses. In
practice, this means not fouling up: avoiding simple spelling and grammar
mistakes, taking care to look out for corporate buzz words or taboo phrases;
and generally making sure your copy will ring all the right bells with its
intended audience.
Try to ensure every job meets and exceeds your clients’ expectations
and that your service is impeccably professional every time. It is a tall
order, and you are unlikely to always get it right. But try hard enough
and your efforts should pay off.
Know your limits!
Finally, be aware that it can sometimes pay to stay away from areas where
you are not sure of your abilities. One poorly executed piece of work can be
enough for a client to lose confidence in you. If you really fancy trying your
hand at a type of job you have never done before, it might be best to make
your client fully aware that this is new territory for you and, if they still want
to go ahead, agree to do the work at a discount or waive all payment unless
they are completely satisfied, so they do not feel they are taking a risk.
7
Getting Help
1. Don’t Be Alarmed!
I have called this chapter Getting Help as a bit of a catch-all for some
non-basic areas you might come across in the course of running your
business, not because things are likely to go wrong. Thankfully, although
copywriting can make an important contribution to an organisation’s image
and marketing success, it is rarely a matter of life-or-death importance and
you are unlikely to get sued, lynched or otherwise persecuted if you
foul up.
Usually, the worst that can happen in this line of business is that you miss
a deadline or submit terrible copy for a really important project, in which
case the client will (quite rightly, in my opinion) refuse to pay you and
choose never to work with you again. Provided you are a competent writer
and maintain at least a semblance of professionalism, you can generally avoid
such situations.
Nevertheless, there are likely to be times when you will find it useful to
seek help from other individuals and organisations. Here are some of the
more obvious ones.
2. Lawyers and Legal Matters
In all the time I have been running my own business I have never needed to
consult a lawyer and I sincerely hope things stay that way. Having said that,
I can think of at least three situations in which legal help can be useful if not
indispensable:
87
88 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
If you are setting up a company or a partnership, rather than acting as a
sole trader, it would probably be a good idea to get a lawyer involved in
drawing up documents like employment contracts, partnership
agreements and terms of engagement for clients.
в—†
If you win a really important piece of work (one that is likely to provide
most of your income for some time, for example), it would be useful to
get a lawyer to draw up a contract for your client to sign, or look over
any contracts provided by the client, to make sure that your position is
safeguarded as far as possible if things go wrong.
в—†
If your business involves publishing rather than simply working for
publishers (for example if you produce a newsletter or website for general
consumption), then you should have access to a lawyer who can make
sure you will not fall foul of libel laws. (Many publishers have their own
in-house legal person or team to take care of this.)
Whatever your requirement, you will probably need to find a legal
expert with some degree of specialisation (particularly in the case of
libel law) and you should ask around to see if your business
contacts can recommend someone appropriate.
3. Professional Bodies
The main professional bodies in the creative, media and marketing sectors,
such as the Advertising Association (AA), the Direct Marketing Association
(DMA) or the Public Relations Consultants Association (PRCA), tend to be
geared towards agencies rather than individuals. As a result, membership of
one or another of them is unlikely to be very worthwhile unless you are
running a substantial business and/or have strong links with a particular
sector, such as advertising.
There are exceptions to this. The National Union of Journalists (NUJ)
and Institute of Copywriting, for example, both have more to offer
freelances, probably in recognition of the greater number of people who go
Getting Help / 89
it alone in these fields. Even so, this does not necessarily mean that it will
benefit you much to join them. The points to weigh up when considering
membership of a professional body are:
в—†
How much does it cost?
в—†
Are you likely to get work, through referrals or introductions, if you join?
в—†
Will clients be more likely to take you on if you are a member, or refuse
your services if you are not?
в—†
Does the organisation offer fringe benefits, such as reduced insurance
cover, that offset the membership fee?
в—†
Will the organisation’s events help you network or give you access to
expertise that you can draw on in your line of business?
в—†
Will membership give you access to training or information that will be
of benefit to you?
If in doubt, it might be worth talking to members to find out whether they
think it is worthwhile. Some further points to bear in mind are:
в—†
Membership of a professional body is not essential for running a
successful copywriting business.
в—†
Some professional bodies can be little more than old boys’ clubs.
в—†
If most of your copywriting work is within a particular industry, such as
technology, you might get better value, both in terms of contacts and
access to knowledge, from joining a relevant body in that industry.
в—†
Many of the larger professional bodies will provide free information and
advice to non-members.
90 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
There are contact details for professional bodies in the creative, media
and marketing industries at the back of this book.
Is it worth becoming a member of a union?
The only properly unionised industry related to copywriting is journalism. If
you do a lot of journalistic writing, it may well be worth becoming a
member of the NUJ or a similar union, if for no other reason than your
membership card will act as valid press identification and enable you to get
into events and briefings you might not be admitted to otherwise. You will
also, of course, have access to many other services, such as legal advice.
4. Working With Other Freelancers
When running your own business, the name of the game is usually to try to
keep as much work as possible to yourself. There may be occasions,
however, when you are faced with a project of such scope or complexity that
it is worth bringing in other freelancers to help you out.
It may be that you are simply farming out a large piece of copywriting
work, or that you are entrusted with a more complicated project, such as
developing a magazine or a website, and need to bring in specialist help in
the form of designers, photographers and so on.
This is where a network of business associates, if you have one, can really
come into its own. When working on a large project, particularly if you have
overall responsibility, it helps to be able to rely on people whose abilities you
trust and perhaps with whom you have worked before.
If you do not know of anyone first-hand, it might be worth asking
around business contacts and friends before resorting to non-recommended
sources such as you might find advertised in industry magazines or on the
internet. Alternatively, your client might be able to suggest someone they
have worked with before.
Assembling and working with a �virtual team’ can be very satisfying if you
usually work alone, and can theoretically give you access to much larger
Getting Help / 91
contracts. Another attraction is that teams can be assembled and disbanded
as and when needed, much more flexibly than if you were employing people
directly.
How you split the rewards will depend on the nature of the work and the
makeup of the team. In some cases it may be easiest for you to invoice the
client for the entire project and then pay your associates at an agreed rate. In
other instances it might work out better for them all to be paid directly by
the client. If you have any say in the matter, try to pick a method that
involves the least risk to your business and ensures the quickest possible
payment.
If you frequently give or receive work from a network of contacts, you
might want to consider an informal new business reward scheme,
where, for example, each person gives a small percentage of the fees
they earn from referred jobs back to the referrer.
5. Training
Do you need training to be a copywriter? It is difficult to say. Good
copywriters tend to hone their skills in one of two major industries:
advertising, where there is rarely any formal training to speak of, and
journalism, where training is considered very important and is usually a key
part of an apprenticeship. These two industries produce very different styles
of writing, but with some fundamental similarities that are crucial to all types
of copy, as we shall see later.
Ultimately, no amount of qualifications will outdo a strong client list and
brilliant portfolio, so it is probably safe to say that training is not absolutely
vital to being able to run a successful copywriting business. But when you
are starting out some form of tuition, even if it is a one-day course or an
evening class, can be immensely beneficial, if only in helping give you the
confidence of knowing that your skills are up to scratch.
Sources of training are numerous and will depend on how much time and
money you have to spend and what kind of writing you are interested in
92 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
learning about. From personal experience, I can recommend the Periodical
Publishing Association’s courses to those who want to brush up on their
journalistic skills. Other courses may be less useful; if possible, I would
advise trying to speak to someone who has been on the course before you
commit to going on it yourself.
Also bear in mind that it is not just training in writing skills that can
benefit your business. A one day course on Microsoft Excel, for example,
might pay dividends in helping you improve your ability to do your
accounts. It is important to weigh up, however, the benefits of training
yourself up to do new tasks compared with simply buying in the skills you
need to do the job. Going on a web design course, for example, might be
great fun, but in the long run you might find that it is quicker and cheaper
to get someone else to build the websites for which you are writing copy.
A list of all possible sources of training is beyond the scope of this
book. To find out more, I would recommend starting with some of the
industry bodies listed under Sources and References at the back of the
book, or asking work contacts to see what they recommend.
6. Finding Information
Being able to dig out information and present it succinctly is a valuable skill,
as a successful copywriter often has to do a lot of research – frequently
without many of the resources available to those working in large
organisations.
Areas where you might need specialist information can range from
material for particular client projects to your own plans for your business. If
most of your work is within a particular sector, it is likely you will pick up a
lot of background knowledge by a process of osmosis. In other cases,
though, you will need to resort to desk research.
Nowadays the internet is a first port of call in any fact-finding mission and
if you are not already familiar with the way different search engines work, it
is worth spending some time getting to know them and learning the basics,
Getting Help / 93
such as how to narrow down searches by putting phrases in inverted comas.
The services that I use most often are:
в—†
Google – probably the quickest and easiest to use. The image search is
very useful for pictures if you are presenting rough creative ideas.
в—†
Yahoo! – use its directories for hunting down territory-specific
information, such as the Yellow Pages in Paris.
в—†
UKPlus – for UK-based sites only.
в—†
Ask – for information that cannot be found by a simple keyword search,
such as �What is the cost of living in different countries around the
world?’
The addresses for all these sites are listed at the back of this book. Other
useful websites include (in no particular order):
в—†
Companies House – for basic information on UK companies.
в—†
BT.com – for online directory enquiries.
в—†
Whatis.com – an online dictionary of technical abbreviations, essential for
technology writers.
в—†
Altavista translations – for help with foreign language source material.
в—†
BBC.co.uk – for breaking news.
в—†
Dictionary.com – for word definitions.
In addition, every industry has key information sources you will want to tap
into if they relate to your clients. If you work on a lot of technology projects, for
example, you will probably want to subscribe to Silicon.com and
TheRegister.co.uk; in accounting, AccountingWeb.co.uk and
AccountancyAge.co.uk; and so on.
This page intentionally left blank
Part Two
YOUR WRITING
This page intentionally left blank
8
Delivering Great Copy
1. What Makes Great Copy?
This is the most important chapter in the book. It is about what makes great
copy. Without the skills outlined in this chapter, no matter how much
business acumen you have, the chances are you will not make a great success
of copywriting. With these skills you will already have the basics you need to
write any style of copy, although the chapters that follow may help give you
some pointers on the style and approach needed for particular types of
projects.
If you are expecting me to outline some secret winning formula,
however, prepare to be disappointed. There is a winning formula, but it is
far from secret. The rules you need to follow can be found all around you,
in conversations in the pub, jokes on the internet and even Hollywood
movies.
What all these have in common is that they are capable of engaging you
and commanding your full attention, at least for a while. This is exactly what
you, as a copywriter, need to be able to do – with any audience.
But how? What follows are a few simple rules of thumb that apply to all
forms of effective communication. In a nutshell, all you need to do to write
great copy is to keep it:
в—†
short
в—†
simple
в—†
interesting
в—†
relevant
97
98 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
active and
в—†
honest.
2. Keep It Short
It is quite common to have a lot to say, but most people do not have much
time to listen – or read. So the first rule of copywriting is: keep it short.
Remember that you are not a novelist; your audience is not asking you to
give them something to read on the beach. Instead, think of your copy as a
journey that the reader has to undertake to arrive at the message you are
trying to pass on. No matter how interesting (and it should be interesting),
your readers will want to get to the end in the quickest possible time, so
help them by providing the most direct route. Get rid of any detours and
use short cuts where possible.
The �keep it short’ rule applies to words, sentences and entire texts. In your
copy, every word should count. There should be no padding, no dross. With
everything you write, look to see if you can cut the number of words you
use and still retain meaning. Do this once, twice, as many times as you can.
What you will find is that every time you cut words, your message becomes
more direct and more powerful, because you are stripping away excess to
reveal the core of what you want to say.
Let’s take an example. Here is a fairly straightforward commercial
message:
�The reason why you should buy my book, which is called How to Set Up
a Freelance Writing Business, is that it will help you to become a better
writer and make more money.’
At 34 words, you might think this is pretty succinct. But watch:
�The reason you should buy my book, How to Set Up a Freelance Writing
Business, is it will help you to become a better writer and make more money.’
We have taken out five words without changing the meaning of the
sentence at all. What were those words doing? Just taking up space and time
– and preventing the reader from progressing quickly onto the next
important point. If you look carefully at any text, you will usually find there
are words that simply sit around without contributing to the meaning of
Delivering Great Copy / 99
sentences. The word �that’ is a good example; it can usually be replaced by
�which’, or taken out altogether.
Now let’s see if we can cut away even more. How about:
�Buy my book, How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business – it will help
you to become a better writer and make more money.’ (24 words)
Or even:
�Buy my book, become a better writer and make more money.’ (11 words)
Notice how each time words are taken away, the message becomes more
direct and thus more powerful. How far can we go with this process? The
core message in this example might simply be: �Buy my book’ – just three
words, or less than nine per cent of the original sentence.
Don’t just keep sentences short. Try to break up long paragraphs and
words, too. Your aim should always be to minimise the number of syllables,
or even letters, in your text. If in doubt, it is preferable to have a string of
short words than a single long word. Better still, break up your long words
and then rearrange each sentence so you get rid of some of the shorter
words you have just created.
Watch out for unnecessary punctuation, too. In essence, if punctuation
marks can be taken out of a sentence without changing its meaning or
making it more difficult to understand, then get rid of them. Consider the
following:
�Chief executive, Alan X, says: . . .’
And:
�Chief executive Alan X says: . . .’
Notice how the commas in the first line are not adding any information
or clarification to the sentence. So they have to go. Notice also, however,
that the commas would be justified if Alan X’s name were being mentioned
in a subordinate clause, as in:
�Company Y’s chief executive, Alan X, says: . . .’
In a similar vein, leave full stops out of common abbreviations like �Mr’
or �mph’.
100 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
How long should sentences be?
As a general rule, unless you are writing for a particularly highbrow
audience, no sentence of commercial copy has any right to be much longer
than about 50 words. For an intro, the first line of your text, you need to
hook the reader with a short, sharp statement, so try to stick to 25 words or
fewer. Keeping to these word counts will make your text easier to read. It
will help you in other ways, too, for example in forcing you to clarify what
you are trying to say and making you break your message down into small,
bite-sized chunks of information.
Note that these word counts are for guidance only and will depend on the
exact project you are working on. Be particularly wary of long sentences
(and paragraphs) if you are writing for electronic media (because it is
difficult to scan long lines of text on a screen) or direct mail. For
advertising, where your intro is usually a headline, 25 words of copy is far
too much. Aim for a dozen words maximum in your headline but remember
the name of the game is to write as little, rather than as much, as possible. If
you can summarise your ad in one word of copy, then do it.
3. Keep It Simple
Notice how the paring-down process we used in the example above helped
simplify what we were trying to say. Towards the end it becomes clear that
the text contains a number of distinct messages:
�Buy my book.’
�Become a better writer.’
�And make more money.’
Breaking down a text into simple messages like this is another way of
improving the readability and power of your copy. Once again, remember
that you are not out to wow readers with your literary prowess, but to give
them an unequivocal motive to take some form of action. Highlight each
point clearly and concisely, so the reader is left in no doubt about what you
are saying.
Presenting your argument one point at a time can be important in
helping you work out the structure of your text. If you are writing a feature,
Delivering Great Copy / 101
for example, it is worth setting out all the points in the argument you want
to make and then writing a paragraph on each; as you go along you will be
able to see where it would make sense to include quotes, statistics and so
on.
The �keep it simple’ rule applies to different types of project in the same
way as sentence length. Keep things very simple in texts for electronic,
broadcast and tabloid media, advertising and direct mail. If you are in any
doubt as to how you should simplify a complicated argument, a good tip is
to pick up a tabloid newspaper and see how they have treated similar
subjects.
Finally, presenting your argument in simple terms is useful in helping you
work out the order of your messages – and, crucially, what should be the
first thing you can say that will capture the reader’s attention.
The Fog Index
If you are worried about the readability of your copy, you can use a measure
called the Fog Index to assess whether you need to simplify it. The Fog
Index quantifies how complicated a text is in terms of the number of years
of schooling required to understand it. This is how you use it:
в—†
Work out the average number of words per sentence in your text. You
can do this by dividing the number of words by the number of sentences
in a couple of paragraphs. Independent clauses (such as �The time for
words is over; now, action is needed’) count as separate sentences.
в—†
Count up the number of words in the same section of text that have
three syllables or more, ignoring proper names.
в—†
Add the two figures and then multiply the sum by 0.4 to get your Fog
Index.
The Fog Index of the bullet points above works out at about ten, which is
more or less the same as text in Time, Newsweek or the Wall Street Journal.
Such a score is alright for educated audiences (like the anticipated readership
of this book), but far too high for mass-market copy. Tabloid newspapers
102 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
(and, interestingly, great works like the Bible and Shakespeare’s plays) tend
to have Fog Indexes of almost half that level. And if your copy has a Fog
Index of more than about 12, it is probably too complicated for most
people to read easily.
If you use a word processor to produce copy, it will probably have other
statistics that can help you gauge readability. Microsoft Word, for example,
has two readability indices (which can be switched on via the �Options’
panel under �Tools’):
в—†
Flesch Reading Ease, which ranges from zero to 100, with higher
numbers indicating greater readability. Average texts should score
between 60 and 70.
в—†
Flesch-Kincaid Grade Level, which indicates readability in terms of US
grade-school levels; anything above eighth grade would be considered of
below-average readability.
4. Keep It Interesting
Although we have worked out that the key message (or, if you like, the
desired outcome) in our earlier example is �Buy my book’, this does not mean
it is the message that is most likely to get the reader to act in the way we
want them to. I would expect you to have done so because, as someone
who has, presumably, bought my book, you wanted to improve your writing
skills or start your own business (or something else), but not because
someone had told you to.
When faced with commercial communications, people are often much
more likely to act if you talk to them about an idea (wealth, for example, or
expertise) rather than a physical object (like a book). This is a technique
which has been used by sales people for decades. In How to Win Customers,
first published in 1957, ace salesman Heinz M. Goldmann writes:
�What you sell is never a product as such, but the idea behind the product –
that is, the role played by that product in satisfying a customer’s needs. The
product is a means, not an end.’
Delivering Great Copy / 103
Nowadays, the theory still holds true. In marketing it tends to be embodied
in the phrase �talk benefits, not features’; in other words, what will grab the
reader is an explanation of what a product or service can do rather than how
it works. Nevertheless it is still amazing how often companies insist
on talking about the features of their products in their commercial
communications.
I am going to labour this point, because it is important. People are not
interested in what a product or service can do. They are interested in what it
can do for them. Whenever you have to write about something, don’t think
about what it is or does; think about what it means. Take a new computer,
for example. You could talk about how it has a screen layout that makes it
user-friendly; how even non-technical people could find it easy to work
with. These things might be very important as far as your client is
concerned, because, after all, they have spent a good deal of time, effort and
money coming up with these features. But such messages are likely to be
trivial to the average buyer. What interests the consumer is what these
features might mean to their lives.
In the 80s, Apple Computer adopted this approach to launch its
Macintosh machine. The advertising campaign it used, directed by Ridley
Scott, did not feature a single shot of the product – or even a mention of
what it could do. Instead it showed a character rebelling against an
Orwellian society. In the consumer’s mind, the Macintosh was thus
powerfully linked to the concept of freedom. This positioning ultimately
may have helped Apple become the preferred computer for creative
professionals the world over. In the same way today, Volkswagen’s
award-winning advertising rarely makes a big deal about the cars it
promotes, but instead focuses on ideas like security, enjoyment or
roominess.
What this illustrates about the �benefits, not features’ approach is that it is
ultimately designed to elicit an emotional, rather than rational, response
from the audience. And this is largely what drives purchase behaviour. This
response can be as subtle as presenting a product or service in terms that
make it �feel right’ to the customer; hence why large organisations spend
millions of pounds on brand advertising campaigns that are solely about
making particular consumer groups feel an affinity with their name. As a
104 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
copywriter, your job is to convince your audience; but you will do that only
if you can make it feel something.
5. Keep It Relevant
Making your copy interesting is all well and good, but you also have to
remember that different things appeal to different people. So the first
question you have to ask yourself with any copywriting project is: who am I
writing for?
In virtually all assignments, you will find there are usually two or more
distinct audiences. First there is the ultimate audience, the one your client is
trying to reach. This may be consumers, business people or some sector of
society; youth, for example, or professional women, or members of the
press. If the ultimate audience is not clear from your client’s brief, then
make sure you establish what it is before you get to work. And if you are
not personally acquainted with the ultimate audience, find out as much as
possible about them, both from your client and from other sources. You
need to find out what drives these people and what messages they will
respond to, so that your copy will grab their attention.
As well as being relevant to your ultimate audience in content, your copy
needs to be relevant in tone. Youth audiences are unlikely to respond to
corporate speak, for example. But beware of overdoing it if you are not
familiar with the language of a particular group or you could end up
alienating the audience you are trying to get through to. If in doubt, stick
to simple, straightforward words and phrases as these make sense in any
dialect.
Besides your ultimate audience (and there may be more than one of
these), you also have to satisfy an immediate audience: your client. This
means that your copy has to be consonant with your client’s organisation
and take account of its style and approach to communications. Again, if
these are not outlined in your brief, it is worth querying your client on what
they would and would not like to see in your text. Remember, also, that the
ultimate audience is likely to have certain expectations about how they will
be spoken to by your client’s business.
Delivering Great Copy / 105
It is probably obvious at this point that your immediate and ultimate
audiences may have widely different expectations and requirements. In
general, your job as a copywriter is to try as far as possible to steer your
client towards using the language of the ultimate audience, as this is the
approach that should achieve the best results.
However, you also need to be sensitive to your client’s idiosyncrasies,
particularly if these are imposed by some higher authority. It is usually
possible to come to some form of compromise, but if you cannot reconcile
the two types of content and tone then you really have only two options:
resign the work or accept the client’s point of view (with reservations, if
necessary) and do it their way.
Which you choose is up to you but personally I favour the latter. You still
get paid and many clients appreciate the effort that you put in on their
behalf plus the fact that you understand the constraints they operate
under.
A final point on how to keep your copy relevant to your readers: talk
about them. When writing marketing copy, it is easy to say �we do this’, �we
do that’. Your client’s readers, however, are in the main not interested in
hearing about your client. So write text that says: �we’ll help you do this’,
�you’ll do that’. As a basic rule of thumb, if your copy says �you’ more
often than it says �we’, then you are talking in language that is likely
to appeal to readers. Get into the habit of checking that this is always
the case.
Keeping things short, simple, accurate and relevant is important in all
types of copy and you should ensure that you apply these rules as
second nature throughout your writing. The next two rules are also
crucial, but their importance can vary according to the type of project
you are working on.
106 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
6. Keep It Active
Consider the following two sentences:
�Savings of £2 million a year have been generated by the new procedure.’
�The new procedure has generated savings of £2 million a year.’
Both say the same thing, but the second sentence uses an active rather than
a passive voice. In the first instance, X is done by Y. In the second, Y does X.
Notice the latter is shorter, simpler, more direct and more powerful. It is
easy to write in the passive voice because it sounds more long-winded and
�authoritative’; as a result, it is commonly used in management documents
and the like. This is not the way your copy should read. As I have already
mentioned, when writing copy you are not trying to impress people with
your wordiness, but attempting to grab their attention and get an emotional
response from them that will drive them to act. Using the active voice will
ensure your copy is unambiguous, direct and personal. There may be
exceptions to this rule. If you are writing a report or a management
document, you might feel justified in adopting a passive voice because it will
result in language your audience will feel more at home with. Even so, I
would probably argue that use of the active voice would still make your text
more effective; try switching some of your sentences around to see how they
read.
Using Anglo-Saxon
In a similar vein, Crawford Kilian, author of the excellent Writing for the
Web, advocates using Anglo-Saxon root words rather than Latin root words
where possible. His rationale is that the latter were introduced into the
English language by the Roman administration and in many cases replaced
shorter, �vulgar’ Anglo-Saxon terms which are quicker and easier to read and
carry a much higher emotional charge. To demonstrate how effective this
technique is, consider the following Latin root words that I used on purpose
in this paragraph – and their Anglo-Saxon counterparts:
Delivering Great Copy / 107
Latin
Anglo-Saxon
• introduce
• bring in
• administration
• chiefs
• demonstrate
• show
• effective
• good
• consider
• look at
7. Keep It Honest
If you look carefully you might notice that all the points I have made so far
are in fact variations on a theme. They all refer to putting across a message
as directly and succinctly as possible. Such messages will be easier to
understand and therefore more transparent to the audience reading them.
Which brings us on to the final basic rule for great copy: honesty. Honesty
is crucial in copywriting because, quite simply, customers are unlikely to buy
from an organisation they do not trust. This lack of trust may be explicit in
the company’s communications, for example through blatant over-claiming
in advertising. But it can also, very often, be implicit in the use of
long-winded language and technical jargon which appears to have little
substance. If customers cannot understand what a piece of copy is saying,
why should they trust the organisation it comes from? There is another
good reason to stick to honest, accurate text. In many areas of writing, such
as journalism or advertising, if you mislead your readers you can get into
serious legal trouble.
Accuracy of information
As a copywriter, it is your job to cram as much information as possible into
as few words as you can. That means you deal with a lot of information:
names, dates, quotations, figures, theories, concepts, assumptions and so on.
It is ultimately up to you to make sure they are all right. Someone else,
whether it is the legal department of a client company or the subeditor of a
magazine, may take some responsibility in checking what you have written,
but no customer of yours is going to thank you for handing in material that
108 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
is riddled with mistakes. So get used to questioning and checking every fact
that goes into your copy. Also, do not assume that everything you read has
been checked with the same diligence you should apply to your own copy.
Much published information in newspapers, magazines and websites is
notoriously inaccurate because the content is often generated at speed and
with access to a limited number of sources. (It is sometimes said that
information on the web is less trustworthy than that in the print media but
my personal opinion is that the level of misreporting in both types is about
the same. Online misinformation, however, can spread much more quickly
and widely.)
Particular areas to watch out for (often because you may think you know
what you are talking about when you do not) are:
в—†
Place names (check against a good atlas).
в—†
Name spellings (always check when you speak to someone and if in
doubt then cross-reference your notes with published material, if
available).
в—†
Job titles (if in doubt, a phone call to a company switchboard can help).
в—†
Company names (the phone book or the company’s corporate website
are good ways to cross-check these; and beware of style points, such as
names that are written with a lower-case initial).
в—†
Figures (if they are sums of money, always check the currency).
в—†
Sources (always provide a reference to the original source of information
if you can, even if it is simply �research company X says’. On the web,
you may be able to link directly to the source instead).
Accuracy extends to spelling and grammar, of course. While some people do
not believe you should rely on automated spell checkers, they are at least
useful for picking up the kind of obvious mistakes that can creep in when
you are rushing to meet a deadline; just make sure you have your spell
checker switched to the version of English that your audience will be
reading in.
Delivering Great Copy / 109
As for grammar, there is a case for doing away with as much spurious
punctuation as possible (see above) but make sure your text does not
become ambiguous in the process. The best option, as always, is to stick to
short, simple sentences.
Accuracy versus interest
Since your copy is intended to grab a reader’s interest, it is not unusual
(particularly with dull subject matter) to come across a conflict between the
truth and what you would like to say.
Much advertising seems to over-claim routinely (�Our herbal remedy will
change your life forever!’) to the point where most audiences now recognise a
level of poetic licence as an inherent feature of the medium. (In fact, as I
will come back to in Chapter 10, around 70 per cent of people do not
believe what adverts say at all.) Nevertheless, claims which are factually
incorrect (for example, �Our product is 20 per cent cheaper than our nearest
competitor’s’ – when it is not) can still land you in trouble. The smart
copywriter will ignore the temptation to jazz up a product or service
offering with fancy claims and, instead, look for something that will act as a
unique selling point (USP, of which more in Chapter 10) for the target
audience. Preferably, too, this will be linked to an emotional response rather
than a feature of the product or service, which again lessens the potential for
misrepresentation.
Sometimes it can be practically impossible to think of anything
interesting to say about your client’s product or service. If you are
stuck in this situation, look again at what appeals to the target
audience. After all, someone must be interested in buying what you
have to sell. Think also about modifying your creative approach; could
the message be jazzed up if it were delivered through a different
medium, for example? However, if after much thought you cannot
come up with anything truthful about a product or service that you
believe will interest an audience, you might just be justified in advising
your client to re-think how they want to go about promoting it.
110 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Proofreading
The smallest mistakes are the easiest ones to make: writing �an’ instead of
�and’, missing out a word, misspelling a name. These also tend to be the
mistakes that are least likely to be picked up by a spell checker. Because
most of your copy will be proofread by a client at some point or other, it
can be tempting, particularly if you are working against the clock, to not
worry too much about these tiny mistakes and to leave them for others to
pick up. Do not be tempted.
Handing your client copy that is riddled with basic mistakes makes your
work look sloppy and unprofessional. And your client will not necessarily
pick up on all your small mistakes. Some of them may make it through to
the final version, with embarrassing and potentially costly consequences.
Proofread everything you do before you send it off. Some people believe it
helps to print a hard copy, since mistakes can be easier to spot on paper, but
even a quick scan of your copy on screen is better than nothing – and could
well help you spot a howler in the nick of time.
Do not just limit your proofreading to your copy, either. Make sure you
check everything from proposals to emails. Since your writing is your trade,
you can be judged on every word you put down, and you should admit no
errors.
I have to own up: I am a lousy proofreader. I am forever sending off
material I have not checked and then wincing when I spot a hideous
mistake in it. It is my big weakness as a copywriter. So now go on and
write to tell me what errors you have found in this book . . .
8. Finding Inspiration
Having stripped away your message to the bare bones of what you want to
say, you may wonder whether there will be any room left for that wonderful
creativity copywriters are supposed to possess. How are you going to
impress your client (and their audience) if you are barred from finding space
Delivering Great Copy / 111
for that great turn of phrase or simile you had in mind? How are you going
to apply your written powers of persuasion in an intro just 25 words long?
And surely it is a waste to confine all the research you have done into a topic
to just 200 words of copy?
If that is your thinking, then forget it. I bet your �wonderfully creative’
copy would have ended up sounding pompous and long-winded. Directness
and simplicity are paths to creativity, not obstacles to it. Distilling your
message to its essence will give you a clear insight into what you are really
trying to say. Working out what is interesting and relevant to your audience
will help you discover new ways of saying it. The process can be summarised
as follows:
в—†
What am I really trying to say? (�Buy my book.’)
в—†
Why is this relevant to my audience? (It isn’t, unless they want to
improve their writing skills and earn more money.)
в—†
What can I say that will get them interested in the first place? (�Earn
more through writing.’)
If you know what you want to say but are really stuck for an original way to
put it, here are some tips that might help throw up the headline or intro you
are looking for.
в—†
Narrow down your message to one or two key words and think about
whether they have any connection or double meaning that might work in
another context relevant to your audience.
в—†
Ask yourself �What if . . . ?’ questions about your subject matter (for
example: �What if everyone was given a free product X?’).
в—†
Take a train of thought regarding your subject matter to its logical
conclusion (for example: detergent X washes whiter than ever; so white
your clothes might blind you; so you write: �Optician’s warning – buy
sunglasses before use’).
112 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Turn your argument on its head and think about the consequences of
not using the products and services you are promoting. This technique
has been used in marketing for generations, to create demand for goods
that would probably be hard to justify otherwise. Think about why you
buy toilet cleaner. Sure, it kills those nasty bugs which are supposed to
live in your loo bowl. But how often do you touch your loo bowl anyway?
In many areas of writing, such as journalism, web copywriting or case
study production, you should be able to pull out an interesting intro
from your source material. While you are researching the subject, look
out for unusual statistics, quotes or trends that you can use.
9. How To Present Copy
There are no golden rules on how you should present your copy to your
client. After all, what is important is what is said rather than what it looks
like. Some obvious points to bear in mind, however, are:
в—†
It is useful to include a header with information like the document title,
draft number, date, approval stage and, if necessary, your contact details.
в—†
Headlines, sub-headings and so on should be clearly identified as such
with labels that will not be mistaken for part of the main text.
в—†
Indicate where the text ends, in case part of it gets lost in faxing or
printing.
в—†
Include a word count if this is relevant to the job.
в—†
Include page numbers on documents that are several pages long.
в—†
On very large documents, such as proposals or website drafts, it is useful
to have a contents page with links to headlines throughout the text.
в—†
Give an idea of what any images or graphics being used with the text
should look like, for example by including sketches or short descriptions.
9
Things to Watch Out For
1. Respect The Language
Beyond the basic rules of copywriting that I described in the previous
chapter, there are many other points which you will need to bear in mind
and which will become second nature as your experience grows. First among
these is to get to know and respect the basic tool of your trade: the English
language.
This quirky, difficult mishmash of words has evolved over the centuries
into one of the foremost tongues on the planet, adopted by populations in
virtually every continent and used by some of the finest writers in history. It
dominates everything from the computer systems driving today’s technology
to the markets presiding over the global economy. Its spoken dialects are so
diverse they can, on occasion, seem like languages in their own right; but
the uniformity of written English ensures it can be understood the world
over. You would think such a powerful force for communication would be
sufficient for all its users in its present form; but sadly that does not appear
to be the case.
Modern English is under attack from all quarters. Its assailants range from
those who regularly breach basic rules of grammar because they know no
better, to many who should know better yet persist in wantonly trying to
twist the law of language in the mistaken belief that it will make them seem
just that little bit smarter or more interesting. You will find out who I am
talking about in just a minute. For the time being, though, pick up a
dictionary and leaf through the rich variety of words and meanings therein.
Grab a novel (preferably a good one) and see how the language is used to
express complex ideas with clarity and precision. Then go out on the street
and see if you can spot how many times this wonderful tool is being misused
113
114 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
by ignoramuses or smartarses. Make sure you never join their ranks once
you take up copywriting as your trade.
Written English, as is the case with most languages, is governed by a set
of very simple rules. For example:
в—†
Sentences start with a capital letter and end with a full stop.
в—†
Elsewhere, capital letters are used for names.
в—†
Sentences can be broken up using commas, colons, semi-colons, dashes
or parentheses.
в—†
If there is a direct quote in a sentence, this is enclosed in inverted
commas.
в—†
Apostrophes are used to indicate possessive words (except in the case of
�it’) or contractions.
в—†
Bold or italic type is usually used to provide emphasis, for example in
headlines.
There are many more basic rules, of course, and they are all there for a good
reason: they help the reader understand what is being said. Any deviation
from them is likely to cause confusion and is therefore pointless and
unnecessary. But it is easy to find examples of even the few rules above
regularly being broken in the name of corporate communications. As a
copywriter, you will undoubtedly find yourself being invited to participate in
this process, usually under the guise of �sticking to corporate guidelines’.
While I am not suggesting you jack in the job at this point, it is worth
resisting where possible and explaining to your client that the correct use of
language can only enhance the value of their communications. Whatever you
do, never feel tempted to misuse the language yourself unless there is a
really good reason for doing so.
What follows is something of a rogues’ gallery of
common language abuse.
Things to Watch Out For / 115
2. Abbreviations
Most businesses operate in specialised fields filled with technical phrases that
have been shortened to abbreviations. Some of these, such as �CD’ for
�compact disc’, may be fairly well known to the general public. Most are
not. My advice is to check whether any abbreviation you want to use has
entered common usage by looking to see if it is listed in the dictionary. If
not, assume your readers will be ignorant of its meaning. Do them a favour
by spelling out what it stands for the first time you use it. Being aware
of the exact meanings of common abbreviations can also help you stay clear
of embarrassing mistakes such as �PIN number’.
One area to be particularly wary of is technological abbreviations that
have entered the mainstream. A good example is �WAP’. This stands for
wireless application protocol, a standard which allows mobile phones to
receive internet content, but it is not likely to mean much to the person on
the street even when spelt out. One option if you are writing to a general
audience is to spell out the abbreviation and follow it with a brief
description of what the technology does: �a wireless application protocol
mobile, which can receive internet content . . .’ This is hardly succinct but it
does, with any luck, leave the reader in no doubt as to what you are talking
about. Other technological abbreviations, such as IP (for internet protocol)
or SMS (short message service) are becoming more common as equipment
based on them enters the mainstream. However, they have yet to attain the
same currency as, say, �IT’, which can nowadays safely be used in its
abbreviated form without danger of confusion.
Abbreviations are a particular problem for copywriters in internal
communications, because each business not only uses standard trade jargon
but also has its own shorthand for departments, processes, job titles and so
on. The experienced writer may guess that RSM stands for �regional sales
manager’ but other abbreviations can be completely baffling, and not just
for outsiders. In one organisation I have come across, employees are handed
a book (not a list) containing several hundred abbreviations that they might
encounter. Clearly, in situations like this, it is safe to assume that even many
long-standing employees may not have been able to digest every single
116 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
acronym. It will be up to you to establish with the client which ones are
likely to be widespread enough to warrant use without being spelt out.
Never write abbreviations such as �e.g.’ or �etc.’ as these make it look
as if you cannot be bothered with the text. Instead use �for example’,
�for instance’, �and so on’ or a similar phrase.
3. Apostrophes
The rules governing the use of apostrophes are pretty simple. The
apostrophe is used to denote possessiveness (as in �John’s plan’) or the loss
of letters when two words are contracted into one (as in don’t). The only
exception to this rule is �it’, which does not have an apostrophe in its
possessive form (�its’) so that it can be distinguished from the contraction of
�it is’. Nevertheless, for most people the use of the apostrophe seems about
as difficult to grasp as the offside rule in soccer. Go to any high street (and
many websites too, for that matter) and you will spot apostrophes being
used willy-nilly just about anywhere, but particularly in plural forms.
These so-called grocers’ apostrophes (named because the illiteracy of
traders seems to be the main driving force behind them) lead to
abominations like potato’s instead of potatoes and are now so entrenched in
common usage that there are even moves to accept them into the formal
written language. A more insidious version of the problem occurs with
plurals of acronyms: CD’s is now so widely used as the plural for compact
discs that most ordinary people would probably have to think twice before
guessing the correct form.
The its/it’s rule is also often a common source of problems for novice
writers, as is the use of apostrophes in words ending in �s’. In the latter case,
the best rule is simply to follow the spoken sound, as in James’s plan and two
years’ worth. Generally, though:
в—†
Try to avoid contractions where possible, to avoid confusion (exceptions
are in direct quotes or where you need to save space, such as in website
copy).
Things to Watch Out For / 117
в—†
Know the rules governing the use of apostrophes and the its/it’s rule in
particular.
в—†
Beware that spell checkers will not necessarily pick up on apostrophe
mistakes.
4. Capital Letters in Names
Capital letters are used at the start of sentences and to denote proper nouns,
like Jason Deign. No problem with that. It is a convention which has helped
generations of readers make sense of the texts they are reading. That was
until the last decade or so, at least. Since then, a growing number of
companies appear to have decided they could defy the laws of grammar and
use a lower-case initial in their name, even when it started a sentence. This
trend (whose followers I shall not name, but which include several large
organisations you are very likely to have heard of) appears to been born out
of re-branding exercises where businesses have invested a substantial amount
of money in a name and logo and where the branding agency decides a
lower case initial is an essential part of the new brand identity. Leaving aside
the issue of whether a branding agency should dictate how the rest of the
world uses the English language, I believe this practice is a pointless
affectation on a number of levels:
в—†
It impairs readability and understanding.
в—†
It is almost impossible to maintain consistently in practice as most people
(and word processing systems) will revert to using initial caps anyway.
в—†
It assumes the company name and logo are the same, which is not the
case. They are two separate elements of an organisation’s brand identity.
Similarly annoying are companies that use odd combinations of lower and
upper case letters in their names (easyJet, for example; why not Easyjet?). If
you are working as a journalist, you will often find your publication’s
editorial guidelines are pretty strict on how these names should be written
(and it is usually using the standard convention of an initial capital letter
118 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
followed by lower case). If you are working for a company that has one of
these names, you will probably have to stick to its corporate guidelines, but
do not be afraid to ask.
Finally, if you are ever in a position to advise a business on how its name
should be written, tell your client that anything other than the standard
convention is only going to cause headaches. Even companies like BT and
BAA, whose all-upper-case names are based on pre-privatisation acronyms,
find they are still regularly referred to in the press by their former labels
(British Telecom and British Airports Authority, respectively).
You have probably noticed that I have used a lower case �i’ for
�internet’ and lower case �w’ for �web’ throughout this book. This was a
conscious decision based on the fact that, at the time of writing, these
words were becoming so frequently used that they appeared to be
taking on the status of common nouns. As a writer, you need to be
sensitive to such changes in the language, although in general I would
recommend caution in adopting new modes of spelling or punctuation.
5. Collective Nouns
Companies and other commercial organisations are single entities, yet a
common mistake in corporate communications is for businesses to refer to
themselves in the plural, as in: �Bloggs & Co are proud to present a new
range of lawnmowers . . .’
The same goes for departments, teams and other business units. The
correct use should be: �Marketing is recruiting four new members of staff’;
�The project team is about to make an important announcement’. Note,
however, that: �Members of the project team are expecting an important
announcement.’
Things to Watch Out For / 119
Exceptions to this rule are the police and sports teams.
6. Exclamation Marks
The exclamation mark is an almost completely spurious piece of
punctuation. Its purpose in normal writing is to attract attention to a
statement.
But in commercial texts, where every line is supposed to deliver a simple,
clear statement, adding exclamation marks should be unnecessary. Either
your line of copy will stand up in its own right, or not at all. If you add
exclamations, you will probably succeed only in making your writing look
tacky.
Following a line with several exclamation marks in a row is the
ultimate sign of shoddy writing, which is probably why the ploy
appeals so much to companies that send out junk mail.
7. Jargon
Whatever field of industry you end up writing for, sooner or later you will
come up against jargon: a whole set of words and phrases that have either
been misappropriated or completely made up by a group of users. Marketing
types, for example, may be heard to utter phrases such as �above the line’,
�agency-side’ or �marcomms’. Technology bods will talk about �platforms’,
�interoperability’ and �resilience’. Jargon tends to be loved by those in the
know because they are liable to believe it helps give them an air of informed
superiority. For those outside this cosy industry circle, jargon usually comes
across as meaningless waffle – which is why copywriters should try to avoid
it at all costs. Jargon usually breaks down into made-up words and misused
words. I will give an example of each to illustrate what you should look out
for.
120 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Made-up words
Managers are fond of taking nouns and turning them into verbs. Thus, to
�provide an incentive’ becomes �incentivise’. Having come up with a
completely new word, there is little to stop them going further; hence the
process of �giving incentives’ becomes �incentivisation’. Such terms may
impress the board but are unlikely to do much for the business’s
communications generally. As mentioned above, audiences will tend to treat
with suspicion any communication that is couched in terms they cannot
understand easily. Filling a text with long-winded, obviously made-up words
like �incentivisation’ is just asking for trouble.
Misused words
Every now and then an industry feels it does not have enough perfectly
good words of its own and steals a word from elsewhere. A classic example
of this, and one of my personal bugbears, is the word �solution’.
A quick search for this word on the reference site Dictionary.com reveals
that, according to Webster’s, �solution’ means:
1. The act of separating the parts of any body, or the condition of
undergoing a separation of parts; disruption; breach.
2. The act of solving, or the state of being solved; the disentanglement
of any intricate problem or difficult question; explanation; clearing
up; used especially in mathematics, either of the process of solving an
equation or problem, or the result of the process.
3. The state of being dissolved or disintegrated; resolution;
disintegration.
4. The act or process by which a body (whether solid, liquid, or
gaseous) is absorbed into a liquid, and, remaining or becoming fluid,
is diffused throughout the solvent; also, the product resulting from
such absorption.
5. Release; deliverance; discharge.
6. (a) The termination of a disease; resolution. (b) A crisis. (c) A liquid
medicine or preparation (usually aqueous) in which the solid
ingredients are wholly soluble.
Things to Watch Out For / 121
There is no mention here (or in any other standard dictionary) of the word
�solution’ meaning anything to do with a collection of software and
hardware systems put together by a technology company.
Yet take a look at any text from any high-tech firm and you will see it is
littered with references to the �solutions’ it offers its clients. What they are
talking about is probably best illustrated by another entry in Dictionary.com,
from The Free On-line Dictionary of Computing, by Denis Howe:
Solution <jargon> A marketroid term for something he wants to sell you without
bothering you with the often dizzying distinctions between hardware, software,
services, applications, file formats, companies, brand names and operating
systems; �Flash is a perfect image-streaming solution.’ �What is it?’ �Um . . .
about a thousand dollars.’
This insidious misuse of the word is so widespread that it has even been
embraced by other industries (so, for example, cleaning services have
become cleaning solutions) and incorporated into trading names (Bloggs &
Co Cleaning Solutions).
Furthermore, people I have spoken to in technology companies are often
genuinely surprised that anyone would not know what a �solution’ is in the
context of computer systems, although they themselves are often stumped
when pushed for a definition. The reality is that �solution’ is a non-word
that does the industry no favours because it provides no information
whatsoever on what businesses in the sector can offer to their clients.
8. Repetition
Using the same word or phrase over and over again is lazy and makes for
boring reading. Vary your language as much as possible and try not to use
long words or phrases twice in the same paragraph. If you cannot avoid
repetition, then consider breaking the paragraph in two. It is handy to have
a thesaurus to hand at all times so you can talk about the same thing in a
variety of ways. For example, rather than saying �company’ all the time, try
�organisation’, �business’, �corporation’ and so on.
122 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
9. Use of Italics, Bold or Upper Case Type
Italic, bold and upper case typefaces are usually reserved for words that need
special emphasis, but should be used with extreme caution because they
impair reading. Even in headlines, using upper case type can slow down the
brain’s ability to process information. This is because the brain scans lines of
text by picking up on letters that stick out from the rest; in upper case text,
all letters are the same height, so this information is lost.
To demonstrate this effect, here are two lines of text with only the top
half showing. Which can you read more clearly from a distance?
Let’s see if you can read this
OK, NOW TRY WITH THIS
You need to pay particular attention to the use of different typefaces when
writing copy for the web. Words should never be underlined as this is
standard online convention for a link to another page, so it will confuse
readers. On the other hand, picking out intros and salient paragraphs in
bold or italic type can actually improve readability on screen by giving the
eye reference points to follow, particularly when scrolling down pages.
However, different devices will display text in different ways, so you have to
allow for the fact that your italicised emphasis might not show up in a text
message.
In general, stick to short, simple copy and let the words
speak for themselves so you do not have to resort to
typography to make your point.
10. Words To Watch Out For
The following are culled from a variety of sources and form the basis for
many style guides I have put together. Some of the rules may vary slightly
from one client to another; if in doubt, ask for a copy of the corporate
guidelines or consult with your client.
Things to Watch Out For / 123
в—†
Affect/effect – the first means to influence, the second means to cause or
achieve (as a verb), or result (as a noun).
в—†
Afterwards – with an �s’.
в—†
Alternative – there can be only two of these; otherwise they would be
options or choices.
в—†
Assure/ensure/insure – the first is to guard against certain risks (hence
life assurance), the second is to make certain and the third is to guard
against uncertain risks (hence fire insurance).
в—†
Between – convention is �between x and y’, not �between x-y’.
в—†
Buy-out, buy out – the first is the noun, second the verb.
в—†
Chairman – also applies to women as a job title.
в—†
Close – use in preference to �close down’.
в—†
Complement/compliment – the first means to make up (a whole), the
second is to praise.
в—†
Cut – use in preference to �cut back’ (verb) or �cutback’ (noun).
в—†
Despatch/dispatch – the first is a noun, the second is a verb.
в—†
High street – lower case unless it refers to an address.
в—†
Like – try not to use in place of �such as’.
в—†
Per annum – use �a year’ instead.
в—†
Programme/program – the latter is an American spelling that in UK
English applies only to computer software.
в—†
Shut – use in preference to �shut down’.
в—†
UK – abbreviation for England, Wales, Scotland and Northern Ireland.
Note that �Great Britain’ includes only the first three, while �British Isles’
is all of Great Britain and Ireland.
в—†
While – preferred to �whilst’.
124 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
11. US or UK English?
If you are working for a multinational organisation, or for the web, it is
likely your copy will be seen by a high proportion of overseas readers, which
in turn may mean you have to use US rather than UK English. There is no
hard and fast rule over which version should take precedence, but in general:
в—†
If your copy will be read predominantly by people in the UK, Europe,
Middle East or Africa, stick to UK English.
в—†
If your copy will be read predominantly by people in North or South
America, use US English.
Asia is a bit more complicated. Some countries, such as India or Nepal, will
probably favour UK English while Pacific Rim nations may be more at home
with American. If in doubt, it is probably best to use the latter. Australians,
of course, have their own particular uses of the language.
If you are writing in US English, do not forget that it is not just the
spellings of words that are different; the meanings can change, too.
Hence what Americans call a �trolley’ is a tram to Europeans, while a
shopping trolley is known as a �cart’ in the United States.
12. Avoid ClichГ©s
A final point which should hardly need labouring: filling your copy with
clichГ©s is hardly going to win you much credit for originality or effort.
Beware of buzzwords that can seem great one month but hackneyed the
next. Among others, the following words and phrases have become virtually
meaningless by overuse online and in the media. They are best avoided if
possible:
Things to Watch Out For / 125
access (as a verb)
at this moment in time
boom
clearly
cutbacks
dramatic
essentially
having said that
hopefully
hugely influential
input
largest
lion’s share
massive
naturally
offered
persons
pressure (as a verb)
quick to point out
slash
such as
tight-lipped
unprecedented
and more
basically
burgeoning
crucial
cutting-edge
effectively
furthermore
here is
hot
influential
ironically
leading
literally
meaningful
now
panic
present
pressurise
raft
slump
swath
tranche
very
anticipate
biggest
catastrophic
currently
delighted
enhanced
giant
hike (as in prices)
however
circles
just
leading-edge
major
moreover
of course
per annum
presently
prestigious
rocketed
sources
tasked with
unique
well-informed.
This chapter and the preceding one have covered fundamentals that apply to
any form of copywriting. What follows next are chapters on the major
disciplines you are likely to come across in the course of running your
business.
10
Writing for Advertising
1. Before We Start
Advertising is arguably the most coveted field of copywriting and
undoubtedly one of the most written about. If you are set on getting into
advertising and want to do it above all else, there are plenty of books written
by grand masters in the field that will help you along (although you will still
probably need massive doses of talent, application and luck). What follows is
therefore not a definitive guide for the would-be advertising professional,
but some tips and hints for general copywriters who may find themselves
from time to time faced with having to put together ads as part of their
wider writing work.
2. What Does Advertising Do?
Most people would probably assume that advertising helps sell products.
This is true, but the process by which it does so is not always
straightforward; or else why, for example, would companies that sell only
very expensive computing or network equipment advertise on the telly (and
many do), when the vast majority of the people who will see the
commercials will probably not even understand what a router or server does,
let alone want to buy one? The reason is that sales can be improved in two
ways, with correspondingly different advertising approaches.
126
Writing for Advertising / 127
Promotional advertising
Promotional advertising is a direct attempt to get customers to purchase:
�Sale ends this week’ or �Buy one get one free’, for example. It was this kind
of blunt sales message that gave birth to advertising.
Promotional advertising today is still largely about raising awareness of a
special offer or product that will have an appeal to a particular audience. In
this sense, it can sometimes act more as a public information service than a
sales tool. There is in fact some evidence to suggest that this is how
advertising works – by providing raw information to customers who then
base their buying behaviour on other, more subtle factors.
It is interesting to note that the interactive medium was dominated
early on by increasingly obtrusive promotional ads. In recent years,
however, there has been a growing awareness of the benefits of
another form of advertising online: one that concentrates on the brand.
Brand advertising
One of these �more subtle factors’ is how the consumer feels about the
company whose products they are buying. As I pointed out in Chapter 9,
buying decisions are based as much on emotions as they are on rational
thought. What this means in practice is that, all other things being equal,
people are more likely to buy goods from companies they feel an affinity
with. It is obviously very difficult for a consumer to get enough information
to make a considered judgement on every business they interact with, so this
affinity is usually based on the kind of evaluation we all carry out when
meeting other people for the first time.
When you meet someone, you form an idea of them based on their
appearance, on what they say and, over time, what they do. If their
appearance, thoughts and actions mirror yours closely, you are likely to have
a high degree of affinity with them. (Note how, when you are introduced to
someone, you will usually try to find out what they do, where they come
from and so on, in order to establish common ground.)
128 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
With businesses, this combination of image, communication and action is
effectively what is known as the �brand’. As with people, businesses can
create a high degree of initial affinity with their customers through image
and communications alone. Much of the effort in modern-day businesses is
devoted to creating brands rather than manufacturing, a process
documented in Naomi Klein’s best-selling book No Logo, among others.
Some companies, such as Nike, for example, even attribute most of their
success to this shift. But ultimately, this �brand value’ will be lost if the
actions of the business do not measure up to what it says.
This has not stopped advertisers from cottoning on to the fact that
commercials can have a profound effect on the way people feel about their
businesses. Hence brand advertising: a whole area of communications that is
not about selling per se, but rather about the philosophies and values that
the advertiser wants its customers to believe it embraces. The Apple
computer ad discussed in Chapter 8, for example, is an excellent example of
brand advertising, and nowadays this type of communication increasingly
dominates the market.
By now you may have realised that brand and promotional advertising can
work together to great effect, with the former creating the empathy that will
attract customers to a company and the latter providing information that can
act as a trigger to generate sales. When you take on ad copywriting work it is
important for you to establish what kind of advertising your client wants as
this will affect your approach. It is also important to point out that a single
commercial can act on both a brand and a promotional level.
Brand positioning
Advertising can help link a brand to a set of attributes in the mind of the
consumer, a process called brand positioning. Car brands provide an
excellent example of this in action. Despite the fact that most cars look
pretty similar these days, and are built to very similar standards, as far as the
public is concerned Volvo stands for �safe’ (or, latterly, �safe but quite racy’),
Volkswagen stands for �reliable’, Land Rover stands for �rugged’ and so on.
It could be argued that most of the sales of modern cars (and indeed of
Writing for Advertising / 129
many other goods) are dependent on the attributes attached to the product
through brand positioning.
3. Using Creativity To Sell
In recent years advertising has grown to fill almost every part of our
environment. It pervades our screens, our landscape, our music, our
clothing and much else besides. The arrival of so-called ambient media
around two decades or so ago has enabled advertising to leap from its
traditional haunts, such as television or billboards, to places as diverse as bus
tickets, car park barriers and even dairy cows. It goes without saying that the
profusion of commercial messages around us is such that an average person
can expect to be bombarded by hundreds, if not thousands, of ads a day.
The net effect on us as consumers is that we tend to filter out advertising.
Not entirely, though. Studies show people pick up a lot of their product
information from advertising and will even make purchasing decisions based
on how a brand markets itself through the media, despite the fact that they
generally do not believe the claims of advertisers. The marketing researchers
John E. Calfee and Debra Jones Ringold found that a constant 70 per cent
or so of the population around the world believes that advertising is a useful
source of information; the same as the proportion of people who say
advertising claims cannot be believed (for more, see Calfee’s excellent book
Fear of Persuasion, published by Agora). Sadly for advertisers, the exact
triggers that lead people to pick up on commercials are less clear. Hence the
famous quote variously attributed to Lord Leverhulme, Frank W.
Woolworth, John Wanamaker and others: �I know half the money I spend
on advertising is wasted. The trouble is I don’t know which half.’
Nevertheless, the sheer amount of advertising that now bombards us
means that it can be very difficult for a particular message to stand out.
This has led advertisers (and their agencies) to wage a war of
one-upmanship with each other, boosting the cost and sophistication of
commercials almost every year. While creativity is often seen as the key to
success in this struggle, in reality what counts is an ability to understand the
target market and work out what makes it tick.
130 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
The first thing the copywriter needs to do in devising a campaign is to
work out what the client’s product, service or brand means to real people.
Then the creative process begins. Perhaps more than any other copywriting
discipline, advertising relies on creative talents to get its message across. The
reason is simple. Ads are ten a penny and people do not go looking for
them. Most advertising is ignored. So to have any impact at all, an ad needs
to get noticed then create an emotional response in its target audience.
Bear in mind that what works for one audience may not (or probably
won’t) be appropriate to another. One of my favourite poster ads from the
1990s, for a Japanese brand of beer, got slated in the press by a marketing
head who could not understand the point of the creative. He was evidently
not part of the target market. I evidently was, since I saw the ad, I liked it,
and I bought the product.
Your task as a copywriter is to create an emotional bond between the
brand you are promoting and its customers. So first of all, you need to
understand what motivates those customers.
Get to the point
Once you have worked out what will appeal to the target audience, get it
across in as few words as possible. Ads cannot afford to be long-winded,
because the space they occupy costs money and the audiences they are trying
to reach are unlikely to care much about trying hard to get the point.
Working with clients
It is a sad fact that some of the best marketing ideas end up on the
advertising equivalent of the cutting room floor. Most businesses (including
very successful ones) tend to be highly conservative. Afraid of the
consequences of getting it wrong, they tend to be reluctant to do anything
that might rock the boat; and that usually includes embarking on
outrageous advertising campaigns. As a result, most advertising tends to be a
Writing for Advertising / 131
compromise between the initial creative idea and the rather more cautious
views of the marketing bosses who foot the bill. This means two things for
copywriters:
в—†
first, you need to provide a strongly thought out rationale for why your
ad campaign will work
в—†
second, you need to be prepared to ditch, revise and re-work your ideas.
This process of testing and re-working ideas can, however, work to the
benefit of the campaign. As mentioned above, pure creativity is not the only
ingredient in successful advertising. Ads also need to bring out the right
emotional response in their audiences or else they will simply be annoying.
(And who has not been turned off a brand because of its �stupid ads’?) They
also (as described in Chapter 8) need to employ the right tone for both the
audience and the advertiser. The compromises arrived at in the development
of an ad often involve the testing of dozens of different ideas. Some of these
will be weeded out by the creative team, some by the client and others by
research panels.
4. Benefits and USPs
Remember talk benefits, not features? This is of paramount importance in
advertising, because your audience simply is not going to wait around while
you talk about how many flashing lights your client’s latest gizmo has got.
So the first thing you need to do is to work out what the key benefits of
your client’s product or service are for the audience it is aimed at. Then pick
the one that sets your client apart from its competitors. This is your unique
selling point, or USP. It is possible the USP will already have been identified
by your client and may form part of your brief. It is furthermore likely that
the USP will have a lot in common with your client’s brand; in fact, it might
be what defines your client’s brand. If you think about major brands, it is
usually easy to spot the USPs that they have developed over years of
advertising. And remember that a product or service may have different
USPs for different target audiences. Notice also that the USP is not a
132 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
feature, although it may be related to features in the product or service. To
find the USP, ask: �Why should I want one of these products/services?’
Then turn your answer into an emotion or a feeling. Getting this feeling
across is the key to your message.
5. Maximum Impact, Minimum Copy
Your next job is to write out the message you are trying to get across,
longhand. Unless you are working on a project that specifically demands a
lot of copy, such as an advertorial (an advert written in the style of a press
feature or news item), then you will need to cut the message down. Then
cut it down again. It is fair to say that advertising copywriters are often
recognised and rewarded on an inverse scale to most other copywriters: the
less you write, the more you are worth. This is because you have only a split
second to hit your audience with a message, so it has to be short, and it has
to be good. If you are a really good copywriter, you might be able to do
away with words altogether and come up with ads that get a clear idea
across without even having to be read. (Apple’s 1984 commercial had no
scripted narrative; its idea was clear from images alone.)
Alternatively, try to distil your idea down to a single word. For maximum
impact, the word might have double meaning in association with a particular
image. Or it might be a derivation of another word. Study ads and work out
which ones create the most impact, and why. Think of copy lines that have
stood the test of time. Then try to follow similar rules in your own
copywriting.
Here is an example. The �They’re grrreat’ line for Kellogg’s Frosties.
It is clever, because it ties in neatly with the brand’s mascot;
plus it sells the product in a straightforward way. All in two
words. Can you beat that?
Writing for Advertising / 133
What works
For your main copy, refer back to Chapter 8. Write in plain, simple,
straightforward English. Use short words and sentences. Avoid puns, clichГ©s,
technical terms, abbreviations.
6. Thinking In Words and Pictures
One of the most important skills in advertising copywriting is to be able to
visualise your message in pictures as well as words. The brain picks up on
images much more quickly than it does on the written word, so if you want
to capture someone’s attention it is easier to do it with a photograph or
diagram than with a sentence.
In most advertising, you will notice that images are used to immediately
set the scene for the copy, which effectively acts in the same way as the
punch-line in a joke.
So you could, for example, try to visualise a situation where your message,
the single line of copy containing your USP, will act as a pay-off.
It is also possible to use text itself as imagery. The way copy is presented,
in terms of typefaces, colours and so on, can be important in helping get a
message across. It can even be the substance of the message. As an example,
consider the following ad for Sudafed, a decongestant, created for Pfizer
Consumer Healthcare by Karl Sanderson and Dan Heady of the advertising
agency Bates UK. The ad ran in Britain in 2001 on Trivision posters, which
are outdoor units with slatted faces that allow up to three different copy
messages to appear one after the other:
(Copyright 2001 Pfizer Consumer Healthcare)
134 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Because images play such an important part in advertising, the
industry norm is for a copywriter to pair up with an art director and
form a team. If you are doing a significant amount of advertising work,
finding an art director is practically essential; the additional creative
input they can provide is invaluable.
7. Getting a Response
The aim of advertising is to change perceptions, but many campaigns are
aimed at stimulating sales, too, so it is usual to include some point of
contact where a customer can find out more. This can range from a
subtly-placed website address to a booking number writ large over posters
and TV spots (or even aeroplanes, in the case of the budget airline easyJet).
Ads which carry a very obvious, sales-based call to action fall into a
category called direct response advertising, because their intention is to
stimulate an immediate purchase.
This area started off simply with telephone numbers being included in TV
ads. But it has grown massively with the development of electronic
communications channels such as the internet and digital television, where,
because they are linked to an advertiser’s website, commercials tend to be of
the direct response variety by definition.
When taking a brief for an ad or for a campaign, check to see whether
a response mechanism needs to be included and, if so, what kind.
8. Writing For Different Media
Unlike most other forms of copywriting, where the medium for your text is
fixed (on screen for the web, printed paper for direct mail and so on),
advertising covers a wide range of media, each requiring different styles and
obeying different rules. Writing banner ads for internet sites, for example, is
a very different matter from scripting TV commercials, although in both
Writing for Advertising / 135
cases you still need to abide by the basic rules of good copywriting described
in Chapter 8.
Going into detail about how to approach each type of medium is beyond
the scope of this book. Scriptwriting, for example, is a major field in its own
right. If you are going to be doing a lot of work in this area then I would
suggest you buy a specialist book or take a course on the subject. However,
here are some basic pointers to bear in mind regarding the main media used
in advertising, to help you with any occasional briefs that might come your
way.
The types of media below are listed in rough order of importance in
terms of their share of the market. (July 2007 figures from the Advertising
Association showed press ad spend accounted for 43.7 per cent of total UK
advertising expenditure. Figures for other media were: TV, 24.1 per cent;
direct mail, 12.2 per cent; internet, 10.6 per cent; outdoor, 5.7 per cent;
radio, 2.8 per cent; and cinema, 1 per cent.)
Note I have left direct mail and promotional material out of this chapter
as they are covered in more detail later in this book.
Bear in mind that the range of media used in advertising is increasing
day by day. When approaching any brief, don’t just think about what
your message should be, but also what medium it will work best on.
Then start working on your copy.
Print
This is by far the most frequently used medium, with formats ranging from
small ads in the classified sections of newspapers to full-page display ads in
glossy magazines.
Considerations for display ads are:
в—†
Size and shape: will your ad work as well landscape as it does portrait?
136 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Colour or black and white: mainly a consideration for the art director or
designer you are working with (if you are working in a team), but bear in
mind that your copy may have to work harder if you are not able to use a
very strong image.
в—†
Tone and style of the publications: it goes without saying that your
copy will have to fit with the kind of magazines or newspapers it is
going into if it is to have the best impact with the publications’ target
audiences.
Television
Writing for television is the ultimate goal of any serious advertising
copywriter (and, indeed, many other writers, serious or otherwise). It also
demands very special skills, since your script is not only a sales tool but also
a creative guide to the director who will turn your words into images and
sounds.
Some considerations are:
в—†
Make sure your work is in a format that a director can work with
easily. Scripts need to be set in a single column down the left-hand
side of the page, with dialogue indented and each actor indicated
clearly in capital letters centred over their lines. As a guide, take a
look at some of the scripts on specialist websites such as Simply Scripts
(www.simplyscripts.com). You may also want to buy script formatting
software such as Scriptware (www.scriptware.com).
в—†
An art director is almost indispensable as you will need to story-board
your script prior to production.
в—†
Use the action – rather than the actors – to tell your tale. (For more on
this, the art of �exposition’, read Robert McKee’s book on cinema
scriptwriting, Story.)
Writing for Advertising / 137
Radio
Radio is not an easy medium to write for, since your words cannot get help
from visual props and you have very little time to develop an elaborate
message.
Bear in mind the following:
в—†
Timing is crucial. Try to pack as much impact and information as you can
into each ad.
в—†
It is also important that your messages are short and clear. Remember
that your copy could be delivered in any number of ways and listened to
in any number of environments.
в—†
Think about using sound effects to bring the settings of your ads to life.
If the commercial is supposed to be set in an office, for example, include
office noise in the background.
в—†
Jingles can be used to help deliver a consistent brand message over a
number of ads or even campaigns. If your ad includes a jingle, make sure
you practise it aloud to get it right – a copy line on paper will not always
sound as good when it is spoken.
Outdoor
�Outdoor’ basically means posters, which are broken down into size
categories depending on how many sheets of paper make them up, from six
sheets to 96 sheets covering 400 square feet (the 48-sheet billboard format,
covering 200 square feet, is the one commonly seen on roadsides). Recent
years have seen an explosion in formats, including giant posters (usually
occupying special sites such as the sides of buildings) and those with
Trivision (the format used by Pfizer Consumer Healthcare in the Sudafed ad
example earlier on). A related type of medium is �ambient’, which refers to
advertising in the environment (but not necessarily on posters) – for
example, ads on the back of bus tickets. When approaching this kind of
work, bear in mind:
138 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
The size and location limitations of the medium you are considering, plus
how it is likely to be seen by an audience. You can pack a lot of copy into
a poster on a train platform, for example, because people are likely to be
standing in front of it for some time. If you are writing copy for a
roadside billboard, however, your message needs to stand out in the two
or three seconds it may take a motorist to drive by.
в—†
Whether you can use the context of the poster to drive home your
message. An ad such as �You wait ages for an X and then three come
along at once’ might be a bit hackneyed on the side of a bus but
elsewhere you may be able to improve the effectiveness of your
advertising by relating the message to its environment.
в—†
Whether it is possible to use the medium itself to boost the effectiveness
of your copy. I once worked on a campaign (with the PR agency Band &
Brown Communications) where we built a client’s free-phone number in
giant numerals on a hillside at the side of a motorway in the West
Country, England; what made the campaign effective was not so much
that it was seen by motorists but that it made the news, along with an
explanation of the aims of the campaign.
Online
The classic format for online advertising is the banner ad, that ubiquitous
commercial strip which has become a constant in most website designs.
Nowadays there are many other formats including �towers’ (vertical banner
ads), �buttons’ (square boxes) and ultra-annoying pop-ups, which leap onto
your screen and slow your computer down whenever you try to access a new
site.
Points to bear in mind when producing online ad copy include:
в—†
Stick to really simple messages. Online ads are small and limitations on
screen definition mean you have to use relatively large type (although
some fonts, such as Verdana, have been specially designed to be legible
on-screen even at tiny point sizes).
Writing for Advertising / 139
в—†
Think in frames, but do not overdo it. Animated gifs, the standard used
for most banner ads, allow you to build up a message in any number of
frames. If you go overboard, however, you run the risk of losing or
boring your audience before you get your message across, so stick to
between around three and six frames per ad unless you need more for
special animation effects.
в—†
Beware of the size of the file you are creating. Most media owners
restrict the file size of banner ads to 12 kilobytes; you can, however, get
around this problem by using a Flash animation for your ad. If in doubt,
talk to a graphic designer.
в—†
Online media are designed to be interactive, so make sure your ads are,
too. At the very least they should be designed to encourage the viewer to
click on them, so they will be taken to the advertiser’s web site. For more
on what other types of interactivity can be built into your ads, talk to a
web design agency – you will probably be working with one on this kind
of project anyway.
See Chapter 13 for more about writing online.
11
Writing for Direct Mail
1. The Basics
Compared with the cost of taking out an advertisement, the expense
involved in sending someone a letter is minimal. This is probably one reason
why so much promotional material is sent directly to would-be customers in
the post, a medium known generically in the trade as �direct mail’ and
familiar to most recipients (perhaps more accurately) as �junk mail’. The
amount of direct mail that gets sent out in the UK is huge. Figures are
available from organisations such as the Direct Marketing Association, but
you can probably get a good idea just by sifting through your own post.
Ironically, most of it is a complete waste of time for both the sender and the
recipient. Response rates of around more than two per cent are considered
exceptional. So why do people bother?
The reason is that direct mail (commonly abbreviated to DM) is still
cheap enough to yield a decent return even with such high levels of waste.
In the same way that fish lay large numbers of eggs in the hope that a few of
their offspring will reach adulthood, direct marketers hope to hit their
targets by getting a few-per-cent return on mail-shots of several thousands
of items. There is a downside, however, which is that if this few per cent
does not materialise then the whole exercise can be a costly waste of money.
Not only that, but poorly-targeted and shoddily-produced material can, like
bad advertising, have the opposite effect to what is desired and end up
turning off potential customers. As a copywriter, it is your job to ensure the
creative treatment used in a direct mail piece helps to boost this magical few
per cent.
140
Writing for Direct Mail / 141
2. Selling By Mail
Consider the medium you are working with and how it is used by the
audience you are trying to reach. Letters are a personal form of
communication – hence the surge in post at special times such as, say,
Christmas or Easter. Anything which is less than personal is likely to be
ignored or, even worse, seen as an intrusive annoyance.
Because direct mail involves large mailing lists (typically counted in the
hundreds of thousands), it can hardly be described as personal. Couple this
with the fact that DM usually contains a fairly overt sales message and it is
clear why so many of its recipients are infuriated by it.
If you do not want to be seen to be clogging up letterboxes with
information about products or services your audience has no interest in,
your copy needs to get personal and grab people’s attention.
3. The Importance of Targeting
Personalisation is not merely about using a name taken from a mailing list.
Although it helps if a letter is accurately addressed to a person rather than
just �the occupier’ or �the general manager’, be aware that while
a personalised address might fool the recipient into opening the envelope, it
is unlikely to make a sale unless the message inside is relevant. In fact, some
people are affronted by the fact that an organisation that so clearly knows
nothing about them has presumed to adopt such a cloyingly chummy tone.
What is more, it is common for companies to use the wrong name in the
first place. According to Experian Intact, an online data cleansing service,
each year more than ВЈ18 million is wasted trying to reach the 1.5 million
people in the UK who move home, generating 500,000 postcode changes,
and the approximately 700,000 people who die. It is also illegal (under the
Data Protection Act) to contact people who do not want to be mailed
marketing material, so, in the UK, mailing lists have to be �cleared’ against
the 240,000 per year who register their names and addresses on the Mailing
Preference Service database.
Different laws cover business-to-business mailing lists, but these tend to
142 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
be even more inaccurate than the consumer ones, because so many people
change their jobs, titles and locations each year.
The copywriter is seldom involved in the selection of a mailing list, but
she or he will be expected to write copy which mirrors the lifestyle of the
people on that list.
The list will contain the names of people who meet certain criteria. They
may be house owners who live in a specific location, such as London, or
they may own a specific brand of car, or read a particular magazine.
Although your words may be going out to several thousand strangers, you
have to find a way of making them feel that you are writing to each one
personally.
Look at the criteria used to specify the list and try to work out what all
these people have in common. Try to get into their heads. Find out what
makes them tick. Think of the care and time you would take in writing to a
friend and apply the same principles to your copy. Be courteous and honest
and get straight to the point, because the recipient’s time is every bit as
precious to him or her as yours is to you.
4. Being Creative
Your copy will have to be more than merely polite if you are to make an
impact. Think how much junk lands on your doormat every day and you
will see just how much �background noise’ you must cut through to create
an impression. You need to do something special to grab the recipient’s
attention the minute they open that letter. One of the great joys (or
challenges) of DM copywriting is that it demands a high level of creativity
within a relatively confined format. You must try to fit your imagination into
an envelope. To do this, go back to the benefits and USPs discussed in the
last chapter. Think about what makes your client’s product or service stand
out. Then try to build a message around it that will appeal to your reader’s
emotions. And do not forget to stick to the principles of good copywriting
discussed in Chapter 8.
Do not be limited to the traditional printed paper format of your mailer.
Apart from perishables, poisonous substances and very delicate items, there
Writing for Direct Mail / 143
are plenty of things you can post. Imagine you have been briefed to write a
mail piece for a car dealer. You could send prospects a letter extolling the
virtues of the latest models in the showroom, or you could send a car key
and the message, �Yours for the duration of a test drive’ printed on the fob.
Instead of a piece of marketing collateral, you are giving someone the real
key to a real car. Which is more likely to generate an emotional response?
Covering letters
It has been proved time and again, over decades, in tens of thousands of test
mailings, that no matter what else you send to people, if you enclose an
accompanying letter it will boost response. Letters are seen as a one-to-one
form of communication and even a standard letter mailed to thousands of
customers can be a powerful business tool if it is properly crafted.
DM letter copy used to be personalised in a relatively crude way, by
changing the product make or altering references to family members.
Nowadays, however, many versions of each paragraph, or �module’, are
written up so that they can be combined to make up hundreds of different
letters – each relevant to a different type of lifestyle and life-stage. This
allows the marketer to put together completely different sales propositions
for different groups of people within a single database. The writing is only
part of the story; the databases themselves are extremely sophisticated and
new digital printing techniques have made it possible to produce
high-quality letters to even small groups of people, at relatively low cost.
A tried and tested medium
Almost every aspect of writing for direct mail has been carefully tried, tested
and tested again, until it has become a honed craft. Testing is a vital part of
each new campaign, too. Typically, a client has to mail hundreds of
thousands of packs to even hope to cover their costs. Otherwise, they will
have to spend more on copywriter, designer, printer, stationer, mailing
house, marketing department and so on than they could ever cover from the
number of sales generated (unless they are selling Rolls Royces or
aeroplanes). A mass-mailing is more likely to be counted in the millions than
144 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
thousands or tens of thousands. To make sure it is not an expensive failure,
a mailer will test a mail shot on a run of, say, 5,000 packs. Each pack can
have anything up to 30 different components. Usually, five or six of these
are tested, including, for example, the envelope, the response mechanism
and three or four different messages.
5. Clinching the Deal
Obviously, the whole point about DM is that you are trying to sell
something. But how do you go about it without being too obvious?
The best option is to switch the emphasis from selling to �giving’. This
offer can take many forms: money-off vouchers, a free consultation,
preferred rates, a no-obligation trial or access to privileged information, for
example. Suddenly, your mailer stops being junk mail and becomes a
valuable piece of communication. Even if your prospect does not need the
thing you are offering, he or she is more likely to feel pleased that you
brought it to their attention.
Offering something to the customer helps to justify your reason for
mailing. The subliminal message is: �Here’s something we thought you
ought to know about’. This apparent altruism may go some way to
overcoming any objections the customer might have to being targeted in the
first place, or to receiving a letter which is poorly targeted. It also gives you
an excuse to continue sending mail to the same prospect and thus, ideally,
build up some kind of commercial relationship with him or her.
If you are just writing copy for a mailer it is unlikely you will be able to
decide whether or how you can spend large amounts of your client’s money
on an incentive. However, it is worth asking whether your client is prepared
to give something away in order to get a foot in the customer’s door.
Another option is to find a way of treating the entire mailing as an offer
or benefit. For example: �Be one of the first in the country to try this new
product and save money with our cost-effective service,’ or �We can
guarantee product/service X will help to increase your profits’.
Once you have turned your sales pitch into an offer, you need to make
sure your target can respond to it. A direct mail piece should always include
Writing for Direct Mail / 145
a response mechanism – an invitation to buy or to contact your client. The
more response routes you can offer, the more you will help to increase
response. Options might include phone, email, fax or post. Pre-paid
envelopes and free-phone numbers also stimulate extra replies.
6. Some Golden Rules for DM Copywriters
в—†
Make it really easy for customers to get in touch and make sure they see
the telephone number, email address or whatever by displaying them in
bigger type and in a prominent position within the layout.
в—†
When given the choice, respondents will usually prefer to use the
telephone – but some, such as older consumers, prefer coupons.
в—†
If you ask questions, frame them so they can be answered with a �yes’,
�no’ or �don’t know’ response, so respondents merely have to tick a box.
в—†
Any device which makes it easier and faster to complete a form or
coupon will also increase the response.
в—†
Always put coupons on the outside edge of a letter, preferably with
perforations, so they can be detached easily.
в—†
Never ask too many questions because it is easy to put people off before
they even start.
в—†
Always ask the most important questions first, just in case the recipient
runs out of steam halfway through the coupon or questionnaire.
в—†
Customers can be extremely lazy or inattentive, so make it really easy for
them to understand what you are offering and how they can take
advantage of it.
в—†
Clients can sometimes miss a trick or two, as well. When you take a brief,
make sure you understand exactly how they expect to deliver the mailer,
handle responses, deal with problems and so on. For example, do they
want to include a response coupon within the copy? And, if so, where?
146 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Has the client remembered to tell you about any small print that needs
to be included? Is there any information that is legally required? Has the
client fulfilled their obligations under the Data Protection Act by giving
customers the opportunity to opt out of being contacted by the
company, or other companies, in the future? Offers and competitions
usually have conditions that you will need to include in your word count.
Mailers for certain types of professional services, such as financial
investments, need to carry a legend relating to their eligibility to offer
advice, and so on.
в—†
If you can, talk to the fulfilment company that will be on the receiving
end of any replies. A large part of the value of DM comes from �data
capture’ – gathering information from respondents – and the way you
word questions can make a big difference to how easy and costly this is.
7. Consumer and Business-To-Business Audiences
An important distinction in direct mail and indeed in many other areas of
copywriting is whether your messages are aimed at the general public (or
sections of it) or businesses. Nowadays these two markets are often known
by the abbreviations they were given during the dotcom boom – �b2c’ for
�business-to-consumer’ and �b2b’ for �business-to-business’. Some of the
differences between these two types of work are:
в—†
In consumer marketing, the average number of prospects targeted tends
to be larger.
в—†
Targeting in b2b tends to be by industry sector and job title.
в—†
In both areas the key is to get the attention of the purchase
decision-maker, but in b2b this can be more difficult because mail is
often intercepted by �gatekeepers’ – secretaries, private assistants and so
on.
в—†
Because people move jobs and companies so often, it is almost impossible
to keep business-to-business lists up to date and accurate.
Writing for Direct Mail / 147
8. Email Marketing
Recent years have seen a massive surge in the popularity of email as a
medium to supplement or replace traditional mail in DM, to the point
where few b2b campaigns (and an increasing number of b2c campaigns) are
complete without an email component. There is a good number of reasons
for this popularity, such as:
в—†
Email delivery is around three or four orders of magnitude cheaper than
post, plus it is virtually instantaneous.
в—†
With email you can tell automatically when a message is opened or an
address is defunct.
в—†
It is much easier for customers to respond to email, either via a reply-to
address or a link to a website.
в—†
Emails can also easily be sent to other personal electronic devices, such as
personal digital assistants or mobile phones.
Given these (and other) benefits, it is a shame that a number of less-thanscrupulous email marketers have spoilt the pitch for the rest of the industry by
flooding inboxes around the world with unsolicited commercial email or �spam’.
(The common name is thought to have been derived from a Monty Python sketch
in which Spam, a meat product, was offered with everything on sale in a cafГ©.)
If you use a common email platform such as Microsoft Hotmail, you can
end up getting several hundred spam emails a week. Even extreme
low-grade spam (of which there is an awful lot) is often made to appear
legitimate by the inclusion of an �unsubscribe’ opt-out link that promises to
remove the user from the mailing list their address was found on.
Selecting this option is worse than doing nothing, however; it will either
lead to a dead-end link or, more likely, alert the list user to the fact that
your email is alive, so your address can be re-sold to other spammers.
Given that most people (and companies) pay for their email and internet
connections and are wasting both money and time whenever they have to
148 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
deal with spam, it is not surprising that unsolicited email is a major bane for
both targets and the internet and DM industries in general. Legitimate email
marketers usually work with lists where users have specifically stated they
want to receive information; these are either built up in-house from an
existing customer-base or shared between commercial partners with the
express consent of the user.
Spam, though, is often difficult to tell from bona-fide opt-in
communications (called �permission-based marketing’ in the industry),
which means most email users soon get wary of anything that looks like a
commercial message and filter it out.
There are other drawbacks to the medium that you need to be aware of,
too:
в—†
Even without spam, the number of email messages being sent around the
world is growing to the point where a typical user is likely to get
overwhelmed. It is said that a typical business user spends over two hours
a day just dealing with email.
в—†
Although most email platforms allow you to receive messages (called
HTML emails) with formatting, images and other design elements, you
cannot guarantee all your targets will see these as intended. So,
design-wise, email marketing offers two options: either send out HTML
emails and bear in mind that a proportion of your prospects may end up
getting a messy mix of text and computer code, or stick to plain text with
no formatting whatsoever.
в—†
Unlike postal addresses, not everyone you may want to reach has got
email and certain sectors of the population are not likely to have it for
some time (although, from a marketing perspective, it may be possible to
reach some of these with mobile text messaging instead).
Writing for Direct Mail / 149
Tips for direct email copywriting
Bearing in mind the above, you should:
в—†
Write text that will have impact on its own, without formatting, unless
you are reasonably certain that your targets can receive HTML email.
в—†
Avoid anything in the subject line that may make the email look like
spam. This includes multiple exclamation marks (or, indeed, any
exclamation marks), nonspecific subjects (�hey’; �I thought you might be
interested in this’; and so on), all-caps and truncated or corrupted
headings (�HEY!!!!! I THOUGHT YOU MIGHT BExguqua’).
Things that will help make your emails more effective include:
в—†
Coming from a reputable source (a category which hopefully includes
your clients).
в—†
Having a subject line that offers a clear and obvious reason for being read
(�Improve your customer retention by 10%’ rather than �News from
Company X’, for example).
в—†
Talking benefits right up front.
в—†
Using a tone that is informal, but not necessarily chummy. Remember
that emails are more personal than letters.
в—†
Breaking up your copy into small chunks, to make it easier to read.
Ideally, you should have no more than three lines together on screen and
put a paragraph space in between every sentence. Break your paragraphs
with one-line spaces.
в—†
Using keyboard symbols, where necessary, to help with formatting. For
example, if you need to put a line between paragraphs, use a series of
dashes (———) or equals signs (= = = =).
150 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Email newsletters
Email newsletters, often linked to a website, are a common and inexpensive
form of corporate communication whose use ranges from traditional
publishing through customer relationship management to internal
communications.
The basic guidelines of email writing outlined above apply just as well to
electronic newsletters, although there is more scope for bending the rules
because you are usually talking to an audience that has specifically requested
a regular communication from your client.
It will help to have some technical knowledge of web-based
communications as, for example, being able to send HTML emails can make
a big difference to the appearance and readability of your publication.
Electronic newsletters also have much in common with traditional
publications (see Chapter 14), such as the need to create and adhere to a
style guide.
If you are involved in this line of work, whether as an editor, producer or
just an occasional contributor, it would be worthwhile subscribing to a few
email newsletters yourself to get a feel for the medium.
There are many to choose from; some of my personal favourites are
The Grok (www.grokdotcom.com), The Motley Fool (www.fool.co.uk)
and The Register (www.theregister.co.uk).
12
Writing for Internal
Communications
1. What Is Internal Communications?
These days, almost any organisation with more than a couple of hundred
employees is likely to have some form of regular, written staff
communication, providing a rich source of potential work for copywriters.
The traditional format for employee (or �internal’) communications has
always been the magazine or newsletter. These can vary in quality from a
simple photocopied sheet of A4 (which still abounds at departmental level)
to, in large companies, professionally-written and designed newspapers with
circulations to rival those of their commercial equivalents. Increasingly,
however, the newsletter is being replaced or supplemented by other media,
such as intranets (websites used within companies), email newsletters and
even business television. In addition, internal communications work often
involves occasional one-off projects, such as the production of posters or
flyers, to raise awareness of specific developments such as office moves or
reorganisations.
The aim of most programmes is to keep staff (and/or be seen to keep
staff) informed of developments in the business, working on the principle
that informed employees will be happier and therefore more productive
employees.
151
152 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Some things you need to know about internal
communications
в—†
Employees – the people being targeted by internal communications – are
usually rightly mistrustful of what they read and tend to take it with a
pinch of salt. They believe what they hear on the grapevine.
в—†
People in middle management love internal communications because it
gives them a platform to showcase what they do to the rest of their
business. They will be more than keen to help and can end up making
unreasonable demands in their efforts to promote themselves and their
teams (�Why can’t you include the names of everyone in the
department?’ is one question I have heard more than once in relation to
a minor story in an internal communications publication).
в—†
Senior management – the people who approve funding for internal
communications – often see it as a vaguely necessary but inconveniently
costly by-product of hiring staff. They are all the more likely to be irked
by the fact that it is rarely possible to quantify any tangible benefit from
the exercise.
2. Processes Involved in Internal Communications
Programmes
Internal communications programmes can be split into two categories; those
that mainly rely on an in-house resource (either a single editor or a full
editorial team) and those where the bulk of the writing and design is farmed
out, usually to specialist agencies. In the latter case, the business will usually
appoint an internal �editor’ who has an overseeing role, perhaps approving
story leads and copy, but does not directly produce content. Both types of
programme call for freelance copywriting support from time to time, either
to cover for editorial or agency staff shortages, or sometimes to provide
more long-term help with content. You may even be asked to design,
implement and run an entire programme yourself.
Regardless of which of the above categories they fall into, and whether
they involve a magazine, an intranet site, or other media (or, indeed, a mix
Writing for Internal Communications / 153
of media), most internal communications programmes have a number of
features in common:
в—†
They tend to be initiated and led by marketing departments rather than
human resources or finance. This may be because internal
communications is usually seen as an in-house extension of a business’s
external public relations efforts.
в—†
Depending on the seniority of the editor, it is not unusual for copy (or
page proofs) to require approval from one or several senior executives in
the business before it can be published.
в—†
There may also be a network or panel of other people in the client
organisation, perhaps from different departments around the business,
who are responsible for feeding story leads into and gathering feedback
for the programme.
Typically, internal communications programmes all follow a similar
production process, too, regardless of how frequently material is published:
в—†
Story leads are put forward and agreed upon at the beginning of the
production cycle, often in a face-to-face meeting. This may also include a
review of activity just completed (usually the last edition of the
magazine/newsletter).
в—†
Stories are then researched, usually by interviewing agreed contacts in the
business, and written up.
в—†
Once each story is written, it then goes back to the contact for checking
and approval. The copywriter is usually in charge of this process.
в—†
At the same time, requirements for any further items associated with the
story (such as photographs) are followed up. This task, again, quite often
falls to the writer.
в—†
The approved story will then often go through one or two more
clearance stages, for example via an in-house editor and a senior member
of management, before it can be published.
154 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
3. Striking The Right Tone
Every internal communications programme has to satisfy two opposing
requirements. On the one hand, it has to act as a channel for messages from
the management that is funding it. On the other, if it is to be accepted by
the employee audience it is aimed at, it cannot appear to be a corporate
mouthpiece. Most good internal communications programmes get
round this dilemma by at least appearing to retain some semblance of
objectivity.
They do this by facing up to tough issues like redundancies or pay cuts
and talking about them honestly, albeit with a likely bias towards the more
positive aspects of the news. They may also feature �softer’ topics like
fundraising events or personal hobbies, both to make the communication
more varied and readable and to show �it ain’t all work’.
Do these measures have any bearing on employee attitudes and
behaviour? I think they do, but only insofar as the employee
communications programme is usually a reflection of the underlying culture
of a business.
I have certainly had first-hand experience of employee magazines with
surprisingly loyal and enthusiastic followings, but it is fair to say that these
have tended to belong to businesses with relatively honest, transparent
employee policies. Under these circumstances, I believe most employees
recognise the corporate nature of internal communications, but take a
pragmatic view that any news from the business they work in is better than
no news, and so are happy to go along with what they are being told.
Provided, of course, it is not too much at odds with the information they
get from other sources, like the grapevine.
Even assuming you are working with a business that recognises the value
of open and honest communications it is still essential to recognise that the
purpose of internal communications is to impart corporate messages to a
mainly sceptical audience.
Writing for Internal Communications / 155
When writing for internal communications, you need to become adept
at judging your client’s corporate culture so that you can �sell’
management messages in a tone and style of language which
employees will buy into. It should come as no surprise to know that
the style that tends to work best is one that is simple and
straightforward – exactly the opposite of most management
communications.
4. Dealing With Approvals
While researching copy for internal communications is usually fairly
straightforward, often involving no more than a call to someone in a
particular department, the approval process that follows can be extremely
trying.
Here again, two opposing forces can come into play. To begin with, as a
competent and conscientious copywriter, you will produce a draft that tells
the story in the simplest, most interesting way possible, following the rules
of good copywriting outlined in Chapter 8. But your contacts within the
organisation, whether they are the people you speak to in researching the
story or those that have the final veto, may well feel that they want the story
told in a different way, and introduce all sorts of changes when they are
asked to clear the copy.
If these changes are to do with factual accuracy then there should be no
reason to challenge them, unless they contradict something you have already
double-checked yourself. Similarly, cosmetic changes to direct quotes (made
by the people being quoted) should not present a problem. But as often as
not you might be confronted with partial or complete re-writes which
impair the readability of the story, contravene in-house rules on style or even
introduce grammatically incorrect language. (The use of the plural instead of
the singular when referring to organisations or departments, as in �Company
X are,’ is a common offence.)
How you choose to deal with these changes, or indeed whether you
choose to ignore them, will vary depending on the sensitivities of each client
156 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
and the strength of your working relationship with them. Generally, though,
I would recommend the following when handling corrections:
в—†
Admit factual corrections and changes to direct quotes.
в—†
Challenge corrections that are nonsensical, grammatically incorrect or
contravene house style.
в—†
If a lot of the revised copy needs to be challenged, then re-draft it
correctly using as much of the revised copy as possible and staying true
to the meaning of the revisions elsewhere.
в—†
If you have made substantial changes to the approved version, send it
back for a second approval, along with an explanation of why you have
made your changes.
These measures will usually be sufficient to resolve any clashes
between you and your client’s choice of language use. In some cases,
though, the client may insist on sticking with their version. As always
in these situations, what you do next will largely be dictated by
your relationship with your client. If you cannot appeal to a higher
authority, the easiest solution can sometimes be to capitulate
and live to write another day.
5. Creating and Maintaining a Style Guide
Your discussions over the correct use of words and language in copy can be
greatly helped if you have a style guide to refer to. Style guides are intended
to provide guidance on general language use and advice on specific areas
such as industry-related jargon or acronyms. They are important not just in
internal communications, but also in most other areas of publishing, from
web content to magazine and newspaper writing.
Most large, established companies already have some form of in-house
style guide, particularly if they publish a fair amount of material. However,
there may be occasions where you are required to develop one yourself; or
Writing for Internal Communications / 157
where the existing style guide is inadequate (for example, because it is
mainly concerned with the way the corporate logo should be portrayed) and
you have to extend or adapt it. Putting together a comprehensive style guide
can take days or even weeks, but is worth it in terms of resolving issues over
the correct use of terms in corporate materials.
The aim of a style guide is to ensure consistency in written materials, so
when compiling a guide you need to consider all areas of writing that may
be open to interpretation. Examples of things to cover include:
в—†
General language issues: does the company use UK or US spelling? Is
the writing style to be formal and sophisticated or informal and chatty?
в—†
Names and titles: are people referred to by their first names or last
names? Are titles capped up or lower case? How is the business referred
to?
в—†
Locations: how does the business refer to its subsidiaries, trading regions
and so on?XX
в—†
Numbers: when are numbers spelt out? When are they written in
numerals? How do you write monetary amounts, millions and so on?
в—†
Abbreviations: do you write �per cent’ or �%’? Which corporate or
industry abbreviations are well known enough to be used routinely?
в—†
Brand names: how are they spelt and written?
в—†
Slogans and special notices: are there any texts (often called
�strap-lines’) that have to be associated with brand names or with
particular types of copy?
в—†
Special words: are there any words or phrases that have special use or
are to be avoided?
If you are writing a style guide from scratch, it may help to use an existing
newspaper guide for reference; you can buy copies of the style guides used by
major papers like the Financial Times or The Times. It is also useful to hang
on to copies of style guides that you may come across in your work for clients.
158 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Chapter 8 in this book contains pointers on a number of areas that you will
probably want to include.
Once you have drafted a guide, you will probably need to get your client
to approve it. This can be a useful process, helping your client understand
the importance of having a professional copywriter on board but also giving
you valuable insights into the way that the business you are working with
thinks about and refers to itself.
Even after your style guide has been approved, it will probably need to
be revised at regular intervals as new terms are added and guidance on
brand- or industry-related areas changes. Make sure that the guide is
widely available, too, so that it gets used and adopted by as many
people as possible.
6. Human Interest and Business Stories
Most internal communications programmes follow a philosophy that runs
along the lines of: �what is important is the news about the business but
what is going to help staff read it is news about people’. Human-interest
stories – those concerning the exploits of individuals rather than businesses –
not only tend to be lighter (and thus easier to read and digest), but also
help engender team spirit. Plus they can create a sense that the business is an
organisation that cares for its people and is willing to devote space to them
in its corporate communications.
As a result, it is fairly usual for internal communications programmes to
try to strike a balance between business and human-interest stories, often
devoting several news items and sometimes even a special page to sporting
and social events.
Employee magazines or papers may even have a �coffee time’ page with
quizzes, crosswords, cartoons, gardening columns and so on.
Human-interest stories need to be treated quite differently from business
items. The tone is usually much lighter and may even be tongue-in-cheek.
Use of first names is the norm. But it is just as important to seek approval of
Writing for Internal Communications / 159
the subject matter; employees are just as likely to get upset about being
misquoted about their favourite hobby as they are for an error in a story
regarding a new management initiative.
Maximising the interest in human interest
You would never believe some of the things people do when they get out of
the office. I have written stories about staff doing everything from collecting
airline sick bags to taking part in horse-and-trap races.
Sadly, such exploits tend to be the exception rather than the norm. Most
human interest stories revolve around the kinds of things many people do
on a regular basis: playing sports at amateur level, raising cash for charity,
playing in a band and so on. When covering these, it is of course possible to
write up a straight account of the news. But while a five-a-side football game
between two different offices, for example, may have been great fun for the
people involved, it is hardly going to leap off the page in terms of a story.
To make the most of these stories you often have to go beyond the event
itself in search of something truly amusing or memorable. Dig deep for
details when you speak to your source. In this five-a-side contest, did the
novice team trounce the expert players? Was there anything special about
the winning goal-scorer? Was this the culmination of a trend? Was there any
special significance in the date, the location, the players or whatever? You
may find, for example, that the coach carrying one team nearly had an
accident and only the quick intervention of a player saved the team from
disaster – a much more powerful story than your original lead.
Business stories
The principle of trying to raise interest also applies to business stories – and
perhaps with greater justification. Management is often keen to lay out in
detail plans for improved productivity, rationalisation, reorganisation and so
on. For employees, such issues usually boil down to a simple question:
�What does it mean for me?’ (Which, in some cases, can be roughly restated
as: �Will I keep my job?’) The management response to this is usually of the
form: �We are doing this to improve the business and if the business does
160 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
well then we all do well’. (There may also be a few �buts’ involved.)
However, it is important, both for the credibility of the internal
communications programme and for the readability of the story, that the
�what does it mean for me?’ question is addressed up front.
Also, since business stories may sometimes convey news that is of critical
importance to the livelihood of workers, it is vital that they are written in a
formal, sensitive way. It is also vital that they are written. Business leaders
often like to think they can keep the lid on bad news, such as redundancies,
for as long as possible. In fact, such news leaks out almost the minute it is
formulated (if it has not been predicted already) and spreads out through
the organisation via the grapevine. A good internal communications
programme will recognise this and put out an official (if often necessarily
brief) statement at the earliest possible opportunity. Employees appreciate
being told, even if what they are being told is only that there will be more
news to follow.
7. Managing Internal Communications Programmes
If you are called upon to manage a staff communications programme rather
than simply contribute to it, then you will need to become familiar with a
number of production processes as well as the actual generation of copy.
Points you will need to monitor include:
в—†
Schedules: what needs to be done by when? If you are devising your
own schedule, remember to give yourself plenty of time for each step in
the process, in case you miss something out or something goes wrong. It
is also easier to increase the frequency of communications than to
decrease them.
в—†
Costs: apart from your own time, what is the budget allocation for
photography, design, distribution and other costs such as couriers or
meetings? Are the costs realistic? If you are unsure, get a few quotes for
each type of activity and then add a five or ten per cent contingency
figure on top.
Writing for Internal Communications / 161
в—†
Images: how many do you need per issue or per month? What format do
you need them in? Will you be commissioning them yourself or will they
come from stock sources such as photo libraries? How many of them will
be contributed free? Will there be any copyright issues? If possible, make
sure that you have the budget to cover photographers’ fees.
в—†
Design and production: will you be working alongside a designer to
produce pages? What is their turnaround time? How much will they
charge? Who in the client organisation will approve page designs?
Remember that designers tend to charge every time you make
corrections to the copy on a page, so it is best to make sure all text is
fully approved before you send it off to be laid out.
в—†
Print: who will print (or post online) the pages you plan to publish?
Again, what are their turnaround times and their costs? How will you get
to see proofs of the printed pages? How will printed copies be distributed
to employees?
в—†
Feedback and story generation: how will you gather leads? Is there a
panel of correspondents around the business that you can use? Can you
set one up? How will you measure the success of the programme?
Do not underestimate the amount of work involved in managing an internal
communications programme. The job of keeping tabs on all the different stages
of production, from gathering leads and getting copy approval to
commissioning photography and checking proofs, can easily dwarf the amount
of time you spend writing.
Different media
As with other areas of copywriting, the medium you are communicating in
can have a profound impact on the style and content you employ in internal
communications. Here are some considerations that you need to be aware of
regarding each medium:
162 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Staff newspapers, newsletters or magazines will often reflect the style
of a commercial publication relevant to the social mix of the workforce.
In one agency I worked at, The Daily Mirror was used as a rough
template for virtually all employee newspapers; other large company
publications have a similar look and feel to regional papers. However,
one area in which employee publications can rarely match their
commercial counterparts is in frequency. Printing on anything more than
a monthly schedule is usually prohibitively expensive and, because print
and design are normally farmed out, the turnaround time for production
can be days if not weeks. So printed media tend to be rather poor at
delivering up-to-date or time-sensitive news. They are also costly, but are
preferred by many organisations (and employees) because the printed
page is a familiar, easy-to-read format.
в—†
Intranets provide a cheap, quick and easy way of providing information
to employees. Normal rules of web copywriting (see next chapter) apply;
text must be simple and short, which makes intranets a poor medium for
conveying complex or in-depth messages. Also, there can be delivery
problems if employees do not have access to computers or are too busy
or lazy to check the intranet for new content. On the plus side, intranet
stories can easily be linked to other archive materials and text can easily
be changed after it has been posted (a boon for internal spin doctors).
в—†
Email is increasingly used for internal communications because it is
cheap and easy to use. Email newsletters can be put together and
distributed in a fraction of the time it takes to assemble a printed
publication, and for a fraction of the cost. It is easier to quantify the
benefits of the medium, too; you can measure how many people open
the email and, if it is linked to stories online, how many of those get
read. For obvious reasons, though, email newsletters only really work
well when all the target audience has access to a computer, so their
application is limited in sectors such as manufacturing.
в—†
Business television is still something of a rarity but is likely to increase
in popularity as traditional broadcast systems are replaced by digital
distribution via corporate networks. For those entrusted with producing
Writing for Internal Communications / 163
content, the onus is not so much on copywriting as on finding material
that will provide good images: interviews, location shots and so on. The
medium is still relatively expensive and can suffer from distribution
problems if staff cannot all get to a screen. But it remains a good
medium, other than a face-to-face meeting, for issuing critical news
where people really need to know exactly what is being said.
в—†
Other types of media used in internal communications range from
information-based screen savers to CD-ROMs, although none of these at
present looks likely to achieve the popularity of the methods described
above. There is one final type of communication, however, that should
be mentioned: talking. This supersedes every other form in its
effectiveness and you will rarely go wrong by recommending it as a
means of improving internal communications.
13
Writing for the Internet
1. A Short History of the Internet
The origins of the internet can be traced back to the 60s, when the US
Defence Advanced Research Projects Agency devised a communications
network called ARPANET which could still work even if parts of the whole
had been knocked out by a disaster or attack. Over the years this network
developed into what we now call the internet. For decades, however, the
system was difficult to use without technical knowledge, and so was
adopted only by military and scientific establishments, for basic
communications such as email.
In the early 90s, however, two related developments changed all that. The
first was the invention of a computer code called hypertext mark-up
language (HTML). This made it possible to format text, pictures, colours
and patterns on a screen to create what are known as web pages (so called
because they are distributed over a section of the internet called the
world-wide web). The second was the introduction of programs called web
browsers that could read HTML and thus allow users to view these pages.
These developments came as personal computers (PCs) plummeted in
price and started to become a feature in many homes. A few companies
realised there could be a market in giving consumers at home access to the
internet via a telephone line and modem, even though at first the medium
had little more to offer than email and other text-based services such as news
groups. Top among these companies was America Online (AOL), which
built its own network, linked to the internet, and used HTML web pages to
make it easy for people to communicate with each other in communities of
interest. (Although AOL’s proprietory network probably did much to entice
early users onto the internet by giving them an easy way of finding their way
164
Writing for the Internet / 165
around, other companies, known traditionally as internet service providers or
ISPs, have by and large simply provided access to whatever is out there.)
As interest in the internet increased, a growing number of individuals and
companies started adding their own sites to the network (this process is not
difficult provided you have access to a computer, called a server, linked to
the internet at all times). By the mid-90s, not only was there quite a lot to
see on the internet, but getting online was relatively easy, too. The number
of ISPs had grown, web browser programs were easy to get hold of and the
hardware needed (usually just a box called a modem) was getting cheaper by
the week. As if by magic, a vast new medium appeared to have sprung out
of nowhere. The flurry of excitement about internet-based businesses that
followed, the dotcom boom and subsequent bust, touched virtually the
whole of the global economy and is of course very well documented.
The next big development related to the internet was broadband, a
technology which gives you a permanent connection to the world-wide web
and allows you to view video clips and listen to music online. Meanwhile,
there has also been great interest in adapting web-based content to other
digital platforms, such as mobile phones and interactive television.
At one point it looked as though the apparently unstoppable growth of
new media would create a never-ending demand for copy. While this
has clearly failed to be the case, the fact that most websites need a
constant supply of new material means there are still great
opportunities for writers, provided they can demonstrate that they
know how to write for the medium.
The bottom line for copywriters
The web has created an important market for copy by upping the demand
for constantly changing content. This market is vastly different from other
media, however; consider, for example, that a web page can be viewed by
500 million people within seconds of leaving your PC. These pages can
remain in archives for years. They can be linked to, copied and translated
over and over. While it is possible to impose rights on the content you
166 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
produce, so it is available to some and not to others, in general your work
will live on the web forever and be available to any and all for whatever
purpose they want.
2. The Basics of Web Copy
When people first started putting text on the internet there was little or no
notion of the limitations of the medium. Many of the results (some of which
are still around today) were not dissimilar to those of the early days of
desktop publishing in the 80s, with an enthusiasm for unusual fonts and
colours sometimes making text all but unreadable.
By the mid-90s, however, as an increasing number of professional
communicators turned to the internet out of personal and commercial
interest, a body of wisdom began to grow regarding what would and would
not work on the web. From this, a set of basic rules emerged that is now
fairly well established, if not necessarily well known to those outside the web
copywriting fraternity.
The starting point is the simple fact that text is harder to read on screen
than it is on paper. It takes longer to read the same number of words and it
can be difficult to track sentences in large blocks of text. When you scroll
down a page, it becomes even more difficult to keep track of where you are.
In fact, knowing where you are generally on a website is more difficult than
it is with physical media; the page you were looking at two moments ago
can be hard to find again once you have moved on. This �jumpy’ nature of
content, made possible through hypertext links between pages, also means
that you may not finish reading one piece of text before you find yourself in
another.
It is all very confusing. Which is why virtually all the rules that govern
good web copy are concerned with making text easy to read, easy to
assimilate and easy to move around in. The basic rules (with variations
depending on whom you consult) are:
в—†
Break text up into short chunks. Very short chunks. No more than about
50 words per paragraph.
Writing for the Internet / 167
в—†
Make each paragraph a self-contained statement.
в—†
Make that statement worth reading. Remember that bored readers will
be on another page (or site) at the click of a mouse.
в—†
Make the overall text short, too. No more than about two screens’ worth
of copy. That’s 300 to 400 words.
в—†
If your text is longer than that, try breaking it into sections that can go
on different web pages.
в—†
Finally, if a piece of long text absolutely has to stay together, give each
paragraph or two a heading and put links to each heading at the top of
the page; the reader can jump to any section they want to. Make sure
there is a return link with each heading, as well, so that readers can easily
get back to the point they came from.
Getting to the point
In effect, the creation of good web copy is nothing more than another
application of the �keep it short’ principle covered in Chapter 8. When
writing for the web, you need to cut out all the frills and niceties of
language and get straight to the point. No word should be too precious to
spare from the edit.
On the web it is more important than ever to use small words instead of
large ones. But because of space constraints and the need to impart
information quickly, it is also more usual to use contractions (�it’s’ instead of
�it is’, for example) in web copy.
Web readers do not want to hang around reading your copy, but they do
need to be entertained by it. Unlike other types of media, the internet is full
of opportunities for interaction. Your text will be competing with pictures,
flashing banner ads, pop-up windows and all manner of other enticements.
Even when you have got only 250 words it can be a tough job getting
anyone to read till the end.
As important as it is to keep your message short, then, you need to make sure
it is interesting, relevant and/or amusing. Many websites try to achieve this
by adopting a personal, chatty tone with their readers. While this may well
168 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
engage most audiences, I would favour doing whatever you think is right for
the particular readers of the site you are writing for.
Editing for the web
One of the less surprising facts about the internet is that people tend to be
more interested in revisiting websites if there is something new there for
them to see. As a consequence, the principle of updating content as often as
possible has become enshrined in web best practice, happily for copywriters
and others who are charged with supplying that content. News sites, for
example, often post up new stories on an ongoing basis, so publication
happens almost as soon as a story is written.
This voracious appetite for content on the web means editors are usually
keen to re-use material that has been published elsewhere. As a copywriter,
therefore, it is not unusual for you to be asked to adapt your (or indeed,
another person’s) press feature, brochure text, case study or whatever for use
online.
If the text is already short and punchy, this should not usually present a
problem. If it is a 1,000-word feature, however, you will need to make
drastic cuts. This involves skill, but it is a skill well worth acquiring.
If you want to know whether you can edit for the web, try the following
exercise. Take your best piece of long copy – say, a 1,000-word feature.
Make sure it is something you are perfectly happy with; something you
would not change a word of. Now cut it down to 500 words.
This is on the outer limits of what you could get away with on a website.
A content editor would probably want to break up the copy a bit to make it
easier to read online. Now, try cutting it down to just 250 words. In the
process, you will have to ditch virtually all your fancy prose. Your argument
will be reduced to the bare skeleton of what you want to say. You will have
no option but to get to the point. This copy will be fine for the web.
What if you cannot reduce the text that far? Is there a critical example or
argument that is eating up space on the page? If so, try cutting it out and
placing it on a different page, with a link to the main text. This is the way
you need to think about copy on the web. Each piece of text must be short;
but a chain of texts can go on forever.
Writing for the Internet / 169
Content editors have to take a similarly critical eye to all the material
that comes in, hacking away at it to create the screen-sized
blocks that join together to form each website.
3. The Appearance of Text
Because of the difficulties associated in reading and moving around web
text, style and layout can be of critical importance to good website design
and copy readability. Even if you are not in charge of how your text will
look on screen, it is important to have an understanding of the constraints
on layout imposed by the online medium so you can take them into account
when drafting material.
Hyperlinks
Internet users move around via channels known as hyperlinks, which can be
embedded in almost any element of a web page: a picture, an area, a
sentence or a word. When used in text, HTML usually indicates that the
link is there by colouring the text blue and underlining it. In a well-designed
web page, these blue/underline sections stand out so that the reader can see
at a glance where the links to other pages are.
The blue/underline convention is not universal; HTML allows
programmers to state what style they want hyperlinks to appear in. On my
site, for example, I have used a different style for the links in the standard
navigation bar down the left-hand side of the page.
However, most web users recognise blue or underlined sections of text as
being links. This can make it very confusing if the text is not a link, but has
simply been underlined or coloured blue for emphasis.
So the first rule of web copy formatting is: lay off underscores
and blue lettering.
170 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Navigation
In the early days of the internet, web designers rapidly recognised that
internet users needed all the help they could get in finding their way
around. Hence they started using words, such as �next’, �previous’ or �click
here for more’, to signpost the way.
This use of copy works after a fashion, but is inelegant for a couple of
reasons:
в—†
Using signs like �next’ or �previous’ in a chain of pages does not mean
much to a visitor who arrives via a link from a page that is not in the
chain. Instead, give each page a descriptive subhead that is also a link and
provide a list of the subheads on each page.
в—†
Using signs like �click here for x’ or �select this’ is wasteful and clumsy
when hyperlinks can be incorporated into the text itself. Instead of saying
�The report says x’ then �Click here for the full report’, try just �The
report says . . .’ If you use context-sensitive links such as these, however,
always make sure the reader can easily get back to the point they
originally came from, particularly if the new text opens in a new window
where the �back’ button on a browser will not lead anywhere.
Other points
When formatting text on screen:
в—†
Put line breaks between paragraphs to show clearly where they begin and
end.
в—†
Lay out text in narrow columns to make it easier for the eye to follow
each line. Ideally, a text column should not take up more than a third of
the width of a screen, but bear in mind that different types of screen have
different sizes.
в—†
Use (but do not over-use) bold and italic fonts to help particular points
stand out and make it easier for the reader to keep their eye fixed on a
paragraph while scrolling down the page.
Writing for the Internet / 171
в—†
Make sure the colour of the text will enable it to stand out from its
background (so dark letters out of pale backgrounds and vice versa).
4. Thinking in Hypertext
Because of the way it is all inter-linked, the internet can be viewed as one
gigantic document, the components of which can be accessed and read in
any order.
The components of this single, non-linear text are known in the business
as hypertexts and an awareness of hypertext structure is important if you are
to add more material to what is already on the web.
Hypertext’s two main features are that it usually comprises small, distinct
documents (such as web pages) stored electronically, and these documents
are linked to each other in a variety of ways. Thus, if you are planning to
write for the web, you need to consider not just how you will break up your
text but also how you will link its constituent parts to each other and to
other web-based documents.
The first task is fairly straightforward. Take your subject matter and break
it down to headings and subheadings until you have reduced it to chunks of
around one or two screens’ worth in length. These are your individual web
pages.
Next, however, you need to think about the interconnections between
them and make sure these are clearly marked in your copy. To do this, look
at your pages and check to see where there are cross-references between
them, or where such cross-references could usefully be introduced. Also, are
there other links you could include, say to other websites? How many links
you can include on a page is really up to the structure of the site and your
own ingenuity. The average page should include at least a couple, however.
One common, and very handy, type of link is what is called a �mailto’;
instead of connecting the reader to another web page, it automatically opens
up a blank email with a pre-determined address. Use it, for example,
wherever you mention the words �contact us’ on a website.
172 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Copy considerations
A consequence of hypertext is that it is difficult to govern which part of a
website a reader will arrive at first. Logic dictates they will come via the
home page, but that need not necessarily be the case if another website
owner decides to create a link to one of the other pages you are creating.
As a result, you need to write every page as a stand-alone document that
will make sense to someone who has no knowledge of the rest of the site.
This can partly be achieved with headlines and subheads.
A headline on each page that reads �Company X: leaders in supply chain
software’ will give newcomers a good idea of the kind of site they have
arrived at, for example. At the same time, though, your body copy needs to
be a complete text: introduce the subject, expand on it and then finish with
a closing line, which should usually be a call to action (�contact us’ with a
mailto).
Do not forget, that you can make your text more succinct by taking
out examples, definitions and so on and putting them on other
pages, connected to the first via hyperlinks.
5. Words To Watch Out For
Early websites were almost entirely written by geeks, who tend to speak a
peculiar version of English which is riddled with acronyms and buzzwords.
As a result, web copy as we know it was born with a range of common
phrases, such as �check out’, that have quickly become hackneyed and
over-used.
Early web speak also had a tendency to relate to the underlying
architecture of sites rather than their content, which may have been
interesting to other web designers but certainly not to a general audience.
Hence the common use on the internet of phrases such as �check out this
web page’. (What would you make of the line �check out this page’ in a
printed publication?)
Writing for the Internet / 173
So watch out for (and avoid) phrases like:
в—†
check out
в—†
click (as in �click here’)
в—†
come back often
в—†
cool
в—†
current
в—†
cutting edge
в—†
feel free
в—†
surf
в—†
view.
For a fuller list of words to be avoided (with the reasons why),
look up Jutta Degener’s Dangerous Words at
http://kbs.cs.tu-berlin.de/~jutta/ht/writing/words.html.
6. Other Essential Information
There is a number of features of web publishing which are well worth
knowing about even though they are not directly related to text, if for no
other reason than they could save you from embarrassment when discussing
internet sites with clients or business partners.
Images
Unlike text, images use up a lot of memory in a computer and, because of
that, typically take longer to download when viewed on an internet site. This
can increase the time it takes for a web page to appear on screen and,
theoretically, put people off visiting a site.
The critical memory size that a web page can go up to used to be around
174 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
32 kilobytes; this used to be the amount of information that would take a
second or so to download using an average modem. Nowadays, modem
speeds have increased (dramatically so in the case of broadband), but it is
still good practice to keep the total size of each web page as low as possible.
Reducing the size of images is a good way of doing this.
�Reducing the size’, however, does not necessarily refer to the physical
dimensions of an image on the screen. A more effective way of cutting down
on the amount of memory space a picture uses up is to decrease its
resolution. Resolution equates to the sharpness of an image and is measured
in dots-per-inch, or dpi. Images in glossy magazines usually need to have a
resolution of at least 300dpi, but the resolution of a computer screen is
much less than this – typically 72dpi. Consequently, any image that has a
resolution of more than 72dpi and is being used on a website is simply using
up memory space for no good reason.
Another way to reduce the size of an image file is to store it in a format
that does a good job of packing lots of information into very little space.
Two formats are commonly used for this purpose on the web. The first,
usually called a jpeg or jpg (the file suffix for the format, which was
developed by the Joint Photographic Experts Group), is good at storing
photos. The second, called gif (for Graphics Interchange Format), is good
for storing other image types such as diagrams. Animated gifs can be used to
store animation sequences, and have become the standard for online banner
ads.
So the golden rule with online images is that they should be in jpeg or
gif format, have a resolution of around 72dpi and a file size of
no more than around 30 kilobytes.
Meta-tags
Besides the copy and images that you see on screen, HTML allows for each
web page to have texts that are invisible to the viewer but can be read by the
web browser and other internet applications. These texts, known as
meta-tags, have various purposes. One type provides the text that appears in
Writing for the Internet / 175
the title bar at the top of the browser window. Another provides a
description of the page that can be used by search engines in providing
results of a keyword search. Yet another provides the keywords themselves
that will allow a search engine to match the page to a search.
Finally, there is a form of tag – the image tag – which is seen by website
visitors whenever a cursor passes over a tagged image. This kind of tag can
be likened to a photo caption, albeit one that has to be activated by an
action on the part of the viewer.
These meta-tags need to be created by someone (although there are
programs that can create them automatically) and therefore can be seen as
an extension of the copywriting you are doing elsewhere on a site. If you
want or are asked to include meta-tags in your web copy, bear in mind the
following:
в—†
Title tags need to be descriptive: �Bloggs Co specialist widget
engineering’ rather than simply an unhelpful �Bloggs Co’ or �Bloggs Co
website’.
в—†
Search engines use description tags as the prГ©cis of a page, so they need
to give a brief account of the contents and sell them to potential visitors.
I usually write them almost in the style of small ads.
в—†
Keyword tags provide information which search engines use to match
pages against search requests. This is not the only information they use;
they also match against words in the headline and text. However, since
most of the words on any given web page can be found on hundreds, if
not thousands, of other pages, keyword tags provide a way of ensuring a
unique match to a search phrase. (Or, at least, one that is unique enough
to appear fairly high up on a list of search results.) So, when drafting
keyword tags, think of words and phrases that are relevant to your web
page and could be entered by someone looking for the site, but are not
shared by thousands of other sites. On a technology site, for example, the
keyword �software’ will do no more than ensure your page ends up
somewhere near the end of a list of about two million. Instead, try
something specific, such as �software for customer relationship
management.’ To find out whether a particular phrase is already used by
176 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
a large number of other sites, simply key it into a search engine and see
how many results it returns.
в—†
Image tags are not only displayed if a cursor moves over the picture, but
also if the picture cannot be displayed. Therefore they need to be more
descriptive than standard picture captions: �A photo of Company X chief
executive Fred Bloggs’, for example.
Flash
Adobe Flash is a program that allows web designers to incorporate
sophisticated animation sequences into websites. It is loved by designers
because it allows them to show off three-dimensional and animation design
skills, and generally makes websites look much more, er, flashy than HTML.
However, flash pages cannot be read by search engines and have historically
not been able to carry meta tags either, so the points above that are to do
with helping search engines find a particular page are to a certain extent void
if you are dealing with a Flash site. In fact, if your client is building a Flash
site they would be well advised to create a mirror site in HTML.
14
Writing for the Press
1. A Major Market
Press represents, without a doubt, the single biggest market for writers in
the UK, with an output which exceeds that of advertising or any other
marketing-related discipline. The main problem for copywriters in trying to
crack this market is that it is already well served by a highly organised and
qualified body of professionals – known as journalists.
In order to compete, commercial copywriters not only need to be good
at crafting text, but also to have first-rate research skills, an appreciation of
legal aspects of publishing and a knack for writing stories to any given
length.
This is not to say, however, that journalistic writing cannot be a valuable
source of income for independent copywriters. Essentially there are two
ways in which you can exploit this market for profit:
в—†
You can write directly for papers, magazines or websites, under the aegis
of the editor, and be paid directly by the publication.
в—†
You can write articles on behalf of your clients, for placement in the
press. This, strictly speaking, is public relations, which is covered in more
detail in the next chapter.
When considering writing for the press, bear in mind that pay scales vary
widely from one publication to another, but are almost always lower than for
commercial projects. A good average magazine or newspaper rate would be
between £200 and £250 per thousand words – around two-thirds of what you
might charge for the same amount of marketing copy.
177
178 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Throughout this chapter I refer to �press’ as newspapers and
magazines, although the same principles extend to the online versions
of most publications. I have opted not to cover radio or television at all
in this chapter, since they are two types of media which provide only
rare opportunities for commercial copywriters.
2. The Principles of Journalism
In addition to the principles of good copywriting covered in Chapter 8,
journalism usually involves a degree of reporting. Reporting has a number of
features which set it apart from other types of writing; the most obvious
are the following.
Newsworthiness
Information has to be newsworthy to be of value. This newsworthiness is
usually determined by an editor, who will judge it on the following criteria:
в—†
Is the information relevant and interesting to the audience of the
publication?
в—†
Is it recent enough to qualify as �news’? (Note that the definition of
�recent’ varies according to how often a publication comes out.)
в—†
Is it exclusive or has it been covered elsewhere? (Unless an event has
national importance, editors will often not be interested in covering it
without an exclusive angle.)
Authenticity
Reporters deal in facts. Getting facts right is arguably the most important
part of a reporter’s job. If the facts are wrong, the story is at best worthless
and at worst potentially very damaging, as so many high-profile libel cases
testify. This has several profound implications for writers:
Writing for the Press / 179
в—†
It is your duty to make sure every single fact that you state is correct.
This includes name spellings, job titles, dates, times, amounts, sources
and quotes. Become proficient at making notes (or, better still, learn
shorthand) and check all information you are not 100 per cent certain of.
In the worst-case scenario, you may have to stand up and defend it in
court.
в—†
You have to become good at using language to convey subtle implied
meanings that can help a story stand up in the absence of facts. For
example, the phrase �So-and-so is believed to be . . .’ implies that there is
good reason to report an event (perhaps an off-the-record confirmation,
for example), but no hard facts. The critical thing here is that the reader
is still informed but the authenticity of the story is not compromised if
the information turns out to be wrong. Many journalistic terms (such as
�poised to’, �looking to’ and so on) work in this way and so should not
be used simply as stylistic devices.
в—†
The requirement for authenticity does not stop with checking your own
facts. You need to check existing facts, too, to make sure they are correct
in the first place. Despite every journalist’s best efforts to get things
right, time and other constraints can often conspire to create errors in
reporting that then go on to be taken as factually correct. From my
experience in both the press and public relations industries, I would say it
was not unusual for up to 30 per cent of an average story to be wrong,
including, sometimes, the very basis it was founded on.
Independence
Since reporting needs to be truthful, most publications go to great lengths
to remain independent of corporate influences that could put a slant on
stories. So, unlike other types of copywriting, where it is almost obligatory
for your client and anyone else involved to approve your text, press editors
are likely to take a dim view of any input from third parties outside the
paper or magazine you are writing for, on the basis that such input is likely
to introduce bias and damage the integrity of the story.
This freedom from interference is undoubtedly one of the big attractions
180 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
of journalism, but it greatly increases the need to check and double-check
facts at source.
Another consequence of the press’s independent stance is that, as a writer,
you are obliged (or at least supposed) to provide a balance of opinions in
each story. So, for example, if you are writing about a brand new consumer
product, you should seek the opinions of a user as well as those of the
company behind the launch.
3. The Editorial Process
All newspaper and magazine stories follow a clear-cut process before they
appear in print. The following steps are shared by virtually all publications.
в—†
A story lead is logged. This could come from an outside agency (such as
a press release), a fact uncovered by the writer/journalist, or an idea from
the editor.
в—†
The editor weighs up the story lead against the other leads for the issue
and decides whether or not to proceed with it.
в—†
The editor logs the story on a draft page plan and gives a brief, for
example covering the number of words needed and a rough idea of the
angle, to the journalist/writer.
в—†
The journalist/writer researches the story and writes up a draft.
в—†
The editor checks the draft and if necessary changes its position on the
page plan. The journalist/writer may be asked to re-write the story if
more or fewer words are needed for it to fit in its allocated place on the
page.
в—†
The draft then goes to a sub-editor who checks it for factual and
grammatical accuracy. Sub-editors (frequently abbreviated to �subs’) are
the people on newspapers and magazines who are in charge of taking raw
copy and presenting it on the page for sign-off by the editor. Copy subs
check stories for style and accuracy; layout subs handle page design and
write headlines and captions.
Writing for the Press / 181
в—†
On most small and medium-sized publications, the copy and layout
subbing jobs are combined, so the same sub will be responsible for
checking and laying out the story on the page.
в—†
Once the page has been put together, it is checked by the production
editor and again by the editor.
в—†
The page is sent off for printing, at which point no further changes can
be made.
This process usually only varies depending on the number of people
involved. On a very small publication, for example, the editor may carry
out the functions of writer, sub-editor and production editor. On a
large national newspaper, each section will have its own editor and
there may even be page editors beneath them; sub-editing will be split
between copy and layout subs; and so on.
4. Sources of Information
One of the key skills you need to develop in order to write for the press is to
be able to uncover information. Like TV detectives, every journalist
normally has a network of contacts that they can call upon for leads,
clarification and corroboration, and so on. They also rely heavily on in-house
resources like cuttings libraries that can bring up all previous coverage on a
subject in a matter of minutes.
If you are involved only in the occasional piece of press writing and are
doing it from your normal workplace rather than at the offices of the
publication in question, it is unlikely you will have access to either the
resources or the networks used by other journalists. Nevertheless, there is
still a couple of perfectly good research tools at your disposal. First of all, an
internet search will give you information on relevant organisations and any
widely-reported news to date. Secondly, both the phone book and the
Yellow Pages can be invaluable in providing contact numbers that will act as
a starting point for your investigations. If you are based outside London, it
is probably worth getting hold of both directories for the capital because of
182 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
the number of global businesses that have their headquarters there. You can
also access directory enquiries online, although I find the paper directories
are often easier to work with if you know what you are looking for.
Following up story leads, or developing feature ideas, is often a bit like
working your way through an Agatha Christie murder mystery. You may
well have one or two preconceived ideas regarding your subject matter, but
your conversations with sources should help lead you towards a more
truthful picture of what is going on. Remember that you are aiming
for a balanced, accurate view. Speak to as many people as necessary to
get that view. And make sure that you have made notes to back it
up along the way.
How many people do you need to speak to?
Getting to the bottom of a story can take no time at all, or as much time as
you can possibly spare. It all depends on the length of the copy and, usually,
the importance of the subject you are writing about.
A new product launch that is being written up as a filler story can
sometimes be despatched in a couple of lines culled from a press release. A
typical news story, say of a couple of hundred words, may merit one or two
phone calls if the information you need is fairly easy to come by. When
writing a feature, however, you may wonder how much research is needed
before you can be satisfied that you have come up with a well-rounded
picture of your subject matter. Again, it can vary from one single interview
(for example, if you are doing a profile piece) to up to a dozen or more for
an investigative feature. One thing you need to be aware of is that the
research for any given article is likely to take just as long as, if not longer
than, the time it takes to write up the story.
You will also come across different levels of willingness to help,
depending on your subject matter. As a general (and hardly surprising) rule,
individuals and businesses that stand to gain from exposure in the article will
normally be relatively keen to help. However, if your subject matter is
sensitive in any way then you will need to allow for a degree of resistance
from your contacts. I once had the bright idea of writing about layoffs for a
magazine around about the time of the dotcom crash but, after getting the
Writing for the Press / 183
commission, found it nigh impossible to get anyone in business to talk
openly about the subject.
5. Writing News
I believe news reporting is a good grounding for other types of writing
because it teaches you the most basic lesson of good copy: make your point
straightaway and make it clearly. This does not mean that the best news
reporters are great writers. On one level, the most fundamental skill in news
generation is being able to gather the facts which tell a story that nobody
else has been able to uncover.
Nevertheless, writing is a fundamental part of the process and even
though news reporters may not necessarily have to worry about perfect
prose, they do often need to deliver extremely tight copy to demanding
deadlines. Besides turning in your copy on time, if you are working on or
with a news desk it is important to make sure your stories follow a structure
that allows them to be cut from the bottom.
A good rule of thumb when editing your own material is that your
story should always make sense when you chop the last paragraph out
– no matter how many times you repeat the process.
6. Writing Features
Feature writing generally pays better than news and provides greater
opportunities for creative expression. You can pick your subject matter,
although if you write regularly for a publication you may find the editor
suggests topics for you to follow up. And the deadlines tend to be more lax.
In fact, you may have so much freedom with feature writing that one of the
biggest problems can be to know where to start and finish your text.
To an extent, your narrative will be dictated by the type of feature you are
writing. Most features fall into clearly defined categories – for example,
personal profiles, investigations, industry reports and so on – whose style can
184 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
be assessed by reference to a few back issues of the magazine you are writing
for.
Where to start
That still, however, can leave you wondering how to kick off your feature in
the absence of a strong news hook.
My first piece of advice would be to look back through your notes and
see if there is anything that stands out, such as a statistic, a quote or an
anecdote.
Some classic ways to start a feature are:
в—†
Start small then go large. Use an individual example or case study as the
introduction to your general subject matter. For example: �Fisherman Bill
Bundy remembers a time when there were so many cod in the sea you
could pick them out with your hands. He gave up fishing this season,
affected, along with thousands of others, by a massive crash in stocks that
could see the species driven to extinction . . .’
в—†
Start large then go small. Focus on a general trend for your introduction
and then back it up with examples. For example: �Thousands of
fishermen gave up their nets this year following a massive crash in cod
stocks. Bill Bundy, one of those affected, remembers when . . .’
в—†
Start with a quote. This practice is greatly over-used and generally
frowned upon by editors, and should never be used in news stories.
Sometimes, however, a strong quote can provide just enough of a hook
to justify its use in a feature intro. For example: � ��I never expect to see a
cod again in my life,’’ says fisherman Bill Bundy . . .’
в—†
Pose a question. This can be a good way of beginning a feature as long
as you answer it. For example: �What is the fastest-dwindling fish in the
sea? For the answer, look no further than your local chip shop . . .’
Writing for the Press / 185
Other tips on structure
Once you have worked out how to begin your feature, your next two aims
should be to make sure it flows well and that it gets a point across.
This is where some back-of-a-cigarette-packet planning can help. First of
all, based on your research, work out what the conclusion of your feature
will be. Then, look at all the supporting and contradictory evidence and
arrange it in a logical sequence to construct a coherent argument.
When writing, make one point per paragraph and support it where
possible with data or a quote. This one-point-per-paragraph structure
will help if you or your editor need to change the order of the
information around.
Use of quotes
In general, use quotes to support the points you make in the text. For
example: �Nobody knows if cod stocks will bounce back. ��We just do not
have enough data on breeding habits,’’ said one marine biologist . . .’
7. Headlines and Captions
In most situations, headlines and captions get written for you. Occasionally,
however, you may have to write them yourself, for example if you are
working with a small-circulation magazine or employee newsletter (see
Chapter 12) with few in-house subbing resources. Here is what you need to
know about each.
Headlines
Try to distil your story down to just a few words, including an active verb.
For example: �Fishermen reel as cod stocks plunge’. This example has the
added advantage of including a double meaning or pun, which may or may
186 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
not be appropriate depending on the overall style and tone of the
publication. It also breaks neatly over two lines of text or �decks’:
Fishermen reel as
cod stocks plunge
Being able to break the copy in this way is important as headlines often take up
more than a single deck on the page. The ideal headline will break equally well
over one, two or three decks and will be easy to cut from the bottom. Here is a
variation of our previous example, to illustrate the point:
Fishing stops
in cod slump
across the UK
Each line adds information to the one before it and can be chopped out without
rendering the headline meaningless.
Captions
Check the caption style used in the publication you are writing for. Many
use an introductory adjective as a way of grabbing the reader’s attention; for
example: �Endangered – North Sea cod’. In any event, the caption should
serve two purposes: to inform the reader and entice them to read more.
Obviously, then, it needs to describe what is going on in the picture, but it
also needs to get across something interesting or newsworthy. Finally, it
needs to fit in the space under the picture. Which, in the case of a
head-and-shoulders shot, can be very small indeed.
If you are supplying images with your copy and need to write a caption
for use by a layout sub later on, try to include as much information as
possible.
Writing for the Press / 187
8. Writing To Length
Being able to produce the right amount of text is an important skill in any
area of copywriting, but it is particularly critical in newspapers and
magazines because space on the page is at a premium. Running over your
word count by a paragraph or two would not be a problem on a website, for
example, but on a newspaper or magazine it would create headaches for
production staff and you could end up losing material that you felt was vital
to your story.
To avoid running over, the best option is to keep an eye on your word
count once you get about halfway through your story. Aim to over-run
slightly in your first draft, say by about five per cent, and then go back and
edit the whole story down to the right length. I usually aim to hand in copy
that is within plus or minus five words of the target word count. This may
be a bit pedantic if you are writing a major article, but if you find your draft
is more than about five per cent longer than it should be (say, 50 words
over on a 1,000-word feature), perhaps you should think about losing
a paragraph somewhere.
There may also be times, particularly when writing news stories, that
there simply is not enough information to hand to stretch the article to the
length you need. Your options then are to try to extend the scope of the
story, for example by bringing in more background information, or to let
your editor know as soon as possible so they can adjust the page plan
accordingly.
9. Writing for Newspapers, Magazines, Contract
Publishers and News Wires
The differences in approach that you will come across in working for
different types of journalistic media are mainly to do with the kinds of
deadlines you will encounter and the number of people you will work with.
Taking each of the major outlets for press writing in turn . . .
188 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Newspapers
Tend to be at least weekly in frequency and will often have a relatively large
number of in-house writers, although a large amount of content is also
bought in from agencies and stringers (freelance writers who act as
correspondents for the paper). The editorial agenda is usually driven by
news and there may be several deadlines in a single day for different editions
of the paper.
Features desks operate at a (slightly) more leisurely pace and tend to farm
out more of their work. It is normal for different columnists and
contributing editors to �own’ a page or section of the paper and produce
most of the material for it.
Magazines
These tend to be at most weekly in frequency and have relatively few
in-house editorial staff. On features-based magazines it is not unusual for
practically all the stories to be commissioned from freelance writers.
Rates tend to be better than for newspapers. When pitching stories,
however, bear in mind that pictures can be an important part of the subject
matter; you may need to make sure images are available to go with your
text.
Contract publishers
Contract publishing is the term for customer magazines produced by
publishers under contract from the owners of well-known brands. It includes
in-flight and supermarket magazines, for example.
From humble beginnings, contract publishing has grown into a major
industry which deserves an entire book to itself. Some of the
highest-circulation magazines in the UK are contract-published titles and
virtually every major magazine publisher now has a contract arm, competing
with dozens of specialist firms that have hitherto dominated the sector.
Customer magazines tend to operate along lines that are essentially a mix
of magazine publishing and internal communications (see Chapter 12). Each
title has a small number of editorial staff, with a large amount of material
Writing for the Press / 189
being farmed out to freelance writers, but there is also a level of editorial
input and control from the client.
Frequency tends to be no more than monthly and so deadlines are
correspondingly long. Expect rates to be roughly on a par with those in the
traditional magazine sector, although there may be room for negotiation if
the client feels you can contribute specialist knowledge.
News wires
News wires and agencies provide much of the news that goes into �the
news’. Pick up any paper and if you spot a by-line that says �staff reporter’, it
is more than likely that the story came from an agency such as Reuters or
Associated Press. Although many of the larger agencies have features
departments, the daily story agenda is likely to be almost completely
news-driven. Most editorial staff work in-house or under contract and
information tends to be published as soon as it has been written up, so there
are no deadlines as such. Rates tend to be modest compared with, say, the
magazine sector.
10. Pitching Ideas
Unlike other forms of copywriting, where there usually has to be a ready
need and budget for you to get a job, it is possible to sell a significant
amount of work to editors simply by pitching speculative ideas. The process
for doing this is relatively straightforward. Pick a publication, pick a subject,
do some research on it, and contact the editor with your proposal for a
story. It can be a good idea to phone up the editorial department in the first
place, although an editor will almost always ask to see a synopsis by letter,
fax or email.
Your synopsis should be a short summary of the story you intend to write
(usually not more than about 100 to 150 words), mentioning the sources
you have approached or are hoping to approach for information. Also
include notes on photography (if there is any), a line or two on your
credentials as a writer, contact details and possibly a specimen introduction.
190 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Your chances of success with any pitch will be greatly improved if you
have a good feel for the publication and have picked a subject that is
likely to appeal to its readers. Getting a foot in the door can often take
a lot of perseverance, as editors usually prefer to work with freelancers
that they know and trust. But once you build up a relationship with an
editor you may well become a regular contributor to the publication.
15
Writing for Public Relations
1. The Difference Between Journalism and PR
To the uninitiated, public relations (or PR) might seem to have a lot in
common with journalism. Both are ostensibly concerned with providing the
public with truthful facts, predominantly by means of written words in the
media. Both focus on �news’. And in many cases, the output from the two
industries – press releases in the case of PR and news stories in the case of
journalism – appear to be very similar or even identical.
However, the truth to those who work in either industry (and I have
worked in both) is that PR and journalism sit uneasily together, each usually
viewing the other as something of a necessary evil. The press derives a good
part of its daily news from the activities of businesses and rich or famous
individuals and these, in turn, resort to PR to both exploit the opportunities
this presents and provide protection from over-exploitation by the media.
Journalists view this protectionism as needless interference. PR practitioners,
meanwhile, resent the fact that they have to rely on news coverage to do
their job, particularly since press attention on their clients never seems to be
greater than when a disaster has just occurred. The key difference between
both parties is really one of allegiance. PR officers (often abbreviated to
PROs or PRs) have a clearly-stated objective to portray their clients in the
best possible light at all times. Journalists have a somewhat woollier duty to
provide their readerships with accurate information, but in reality are often
mainly concerned with producing headlines (hence the only half-joking
phrase �Never let the truth get in the way of a good story’). Given the
choice between the PR and press versions of the same story, I would hesitate
to say which is likely to be the more accurate and truthful; the only thing
191
192 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
that can be said with certainty is that the press story is likely to be more
balanced, although it may well contain biases which are not obvious.
Outlets for writing
The PR industry’s output is measured almost entirely in words; not just
words of coverage in the press, but also in the text used to secure that
coverage (such as news releases and press packs) and even in the reports,
proposals and briefing documents that accompany the process. It is not
unusual for the latter, in fact, to make up the bulk of the output from
agencies and in-house teams, with relatively little effort being devoted to
press materials. What is more, the number of trained writers in the PR
industry is not very large, so writing skills are at a premium. The upshot is
that PR offers great opportunities for writers with a strong news sense.
Ex-journalists, in particular, tend to be valued by agencies and in-house
teams alike. However, it has to be said that the industry does not favour all
temperaments. It is not unusual for some press materials to go through
months of re-writes, often to the detriment of the finished product, and
those involved on the writing side may need to be able to keep their cool in
the face of pedantic, spurious and grammatically inept corrections.
The fees you charge for PR writing can easily be a third or so higher
than equivalent work in the press. However, bear in mind when
quoting that a lot of PR work eats up time like nothing else. You can
easily agree on what you think is an astronomical figure for a fairly
straightforward job and end up feeling underpaid when the work drags
on for days or weeks. To get round this, either quote on a day-rate
basis or stipulate a cut-off point after which further work will
incur extra charges.
2. How PR Works
The International Committee of Public Relations Consultancies Associations
describes public relations as �the managed process of communication
Writing for Public Relations / 193
between one group and another’. The aim of most PR programmes,
however, is usually simply to improve the portrayal of a business or
individual (the client) in the media.
This improvement can be in terms of the number of mentions or the
way the client is mentioned. If a client is getting a lot of bad press, for
example, the main task for PR may well be to put a lid on all coverage for a
while. In most cases, however, the objective (and the basis for campaign
measurement) is the increase in the number of positive mentions
a client gets in the press. This usually involves a process along the
following lines.
в—†
The client retains or recruits a PR practitioner or team of practitioners.
Large businesses tend to have an in-house PR team, while smaller
companies and individuals may employ an agency or a freelance
professional. It is also not unusual for in-house teams to employ the
services of a PR agency, either to cope with work peaks or, more usually,
to undertake specific projects.
в—†
The client briefs the PR practitioner or team on their objectives. Beyond
simply getting more mentions in the press, for example, they may be
keen to promote a particular product or to raise sales in a specific area.
в—†
The PR practitioner or team proposes measures that can meet the client’s
objectives by improving the way they are portrayed in the media. There is
a vast array of potential ways of garnering media coverage, ranging, for
example, from sponsoring an industry awards event to taking journalists
out to lunch to talk to them about the state of the widget market (or
whatever).
в—†
Those measures that are deemed most appropriate to the client’s brief
and budget will go on to form the basis for one or several PR campaigns.
в—†
The PR practitioner or team then sets about preparing the materials that
will be used as the background for coverage. These can include press
releases, information packs and so on.
194 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Once the materials have been approved they are distributed to the press,
usually along with invitations to face-to-face or telephone briefings.
в—†
The resulting coverage is collected and measured in terms of quantity
and quality. Most PR programmes measure the number of times a
particular take-out or �key message’ (such as �company X is the leading
widget company in the country’) is mentioned.
3. Giving Journalists the Basis of a Story
A common misconception held by many in the public relations industry and
elsewhere is that PR provides the press with stories.
This is baloney.
PR provides the press with the basis for stories. That basis can be a news
announcement, a briefing or a new product launch, for example. (For that
matter, a product or company’s failure to live up to its PR hype can also
form the basis of a story.) The fact is, though, that no self-respecting editor
is going to value a sheet of information that he or she knows for a fact has
been sent to dozens or even hundreds of rival publications.
At best, the press release can serve as a trigger for a reporter to uncover
something a bit more exclusive. This has important implications for how
press releases and other press materials should be drafted. One agency head,
a former boss of mine, best summed up the approach by saying that the art
of PR consisted in trying to trick journalists into believing they had
stumbled across a story. With that in mind, let’s move on to what is
involved.
4. Writing a Damn Good Press Release
The angle
в—†
First of all, what is the brief for the story? And, more importantly, is it
interesting? Get hold of some of the magazines or papers the client wants
Writing for Public Relations / 195
to get coverage in and see if you can imagine this story being given space
in them.
в—†
If you are lucky, you may find there is a ready-made slot for the kind of
news your client is touting. Many trade magazines, for example, have
appointments columns where you can place stories about the latest
corporate-climbing exploits in your client’s business.
в—†
If that is the case, write your announcement in a style that closely
resembles the slot it will go into. Use a similar word count to make the
editor’s job as easy as possible. But include as much supplementary
information as you can, in a �Notes to editors’ section (see below).
в—†
If you are even luckier, your client’s announcement may be important
enough to qualify as real news in its own right. The client may have
discovered the secret of nuclear fusion, for example, or invented a way to
stop toast falling with the buttered side down. If this is the case, your
intro should tell the story as simply and succinctly as possible. But it is
rarely the case.
в—†
More often than not, press releases are of the form: �Company X is
pleased to announce its new line of widgets’. Announcements of such
earth-shattering insignificance will usually be lucky to make it to the
waste-paper bin, let alone the front page. Before you sit down to write a
straight release on anything of this ilk, consider the following. Companies
need to launch new products to stay in business. They are supposed to
win contracts. They are expected to form partnerships. In fact, most of
what your client may claim is �news’ is actually to do with things that the
business should be doing anyway. So why would it be remotely
interesting to an editor?
в—†
If your announcement is one of the 99.9 per cent of announcements that
fall into this category, you need to look for ways to elevate it beyond the
ordinary. Lateral thinking can help here. Is there an angle to what your
client is doing that is quite unusual? Is it an industry or market first, or
last, or biggest, or smallest? Will the announcement have wider
repercussions? One of the reasons I used cod as an example in the
196 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
previous chapter is because I once had to elevate a story about the fish in
some work I did for WWF, the global environment network. The story
was actually about a new campaign to raise awareness of falling stocks,
which in itself was not big news (since campaigning is what organisations
like WWF are supposed to do). So, to make it more relevant to the
public, I proposed an announcement placing cod �n’ chips, one of
Britain’s national dishes, on the endangered species list. There was some
poetic licence involved, of course, since a menu item cannot technically
be declared an endangered species, but WWF went along with the
conceit and the resulting release was interesting enough to editors to
make the story an agenda item the day it went out.
Style and content
в—†
Once you have nailed your angle, if it is a good one, you may be
tempted to use all sorts of Sun-style puns in your headline and
introduction. Don’t. Remember, your press release is not the story; it is
the background to a story. Leave all the clever word-play to the
journalists. The one thing they hate worse than a PR is a wise-guy PR.
Simply spell out your story with an intro of 25 words or less, using words
of no more than three syllables. That takes a lot more skill than writing
any number of puns.
в—†
Also avoid using phrases such as �thought to’ or �poised to’ for purely
stylistic purposes. While the press is at liberty to report on speculation
and rumour, the purpose of a press release is to impart facts.
в—†
Next, back up your intro with as much information as you think can be
possibly relevant. Include facts, figures, amounts, dates, locations and
references. Again, stick to simple words and short sentences. One point
per sentence or paragraph, in order of decreasing importance.
в—†
Make sure the salient points are easy to read and can be picked out
simply by scanning the copy. Use bullet points or numbered lists where
they will help with clarity.
Writing for Public Relations / 197
Page numbers and quotes
в—†
If your press release is more than one page long, indicate that there is a
second page with �cont . . .’ for �continued’, �m/f’ for �more follows’ or
�1/2’ for one page out of two. Some press releases still get faxed to
editors, who will need to know if one of the pages has got lost.
в—†
If your press release is more than two pages long, look again to see if you
have included too much information. Most busy editors will not plough
beyond the first page anyway. If necessary, take some of the less
interesting stuff out of the main body of the release and include it as
background in bullet points on the final sheet.
в—†
All press releases should carry a quote from a named (and titled)
spokesperson, but leave it until the end of the press release. Nine times
out of ten, a journalist will try to speak to someone directly to get an
original quote, so the purpose of the quote in the press release is simply
to provide a backup.
в—†
Make sure, nevertheless, that the quote bears at least some vague
resemblance to spoken English. Many press release quotes end up
full of marketing-speak or techno-babble and cannot even be used as a
backup.
Finishing off
в—†
At the end of the story, write �Ends’ and centre it on the page so that it
is obvious. If you do not, some poor editorial assistant could end up
hunting around the fax machine looking for another sheet of paper (and
they won’t thank you for it).
в—†
Then include the names, phone numbers and email addresses of at least
two people who can be contacted for more information. (Email addresses
are optional; phone numbers are not.)
в—†
There is a good argument for including these contact details on the first
page, too, if space and layout will permit.
198 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
There may be information which is not relevant to your story but which
needs to be included for legal reasons, or to conform to house style;
many companies insist on a short paragraph, called a �boilerplate’, which
describes their business and is unchanged from one press release to
another. This information should be included in bullet points under the
heading �Notes to editors’, at the end of the main release. Feel free to
include as much background information in this section as you like; it can
often come in handy when a journalist needs to pad out a story.
If the story is embargoed for a particular date, make sure you state so
clearly, along with the date and time of the embargo, at the top of the
first page of your press release.
5. Key Messages
One of the most important parts of the press release writing process is to
make sure that certain key messages are included in the text.
Key messages are statements that, it is hoped, will eventually appear in the
press coverage and will help improve the way the client is perceived by the
public. Key messages also play a fundamental part in the evaluation of many
PR campaigns.
Unfortunately for copywriters, many key messages are dreamt up by
marketing committees and tend to be unwieldy to say the least.
Crow-barring key messages into an otherwise tightly-written press
statement can be a job in itself; including them in a way which will ensure
they get used by journalists can sometimes be well nigh impossible.
If you have the liberty of coming up with key messages yourself, make
sure they mirror the brand and are simple, straightforward and flexible. So a
key message for Bert’s Widgets that reads �the leading widget manufacturer
in the North West’ is preferable to �purveyors of excellence in widget
solutions worldwide’, for example – no matter what the marketing manager
thinks.
If you have to make do with existing key messages, and are finding it hard
Writing for Public Relations / 199
to fit them into your press release, you can always put them in the client
quote. And if it does not get used you can simply blame it on the fact that
nine out of ten journalists prefer to get a quote direct from a spokesperson,
so it is up to the spokespeople to get the messages across.
6. When Not To Write Press Releases
Remember that a press release is just a starting point for a story, and as far
as most editors are concerned it is a pretty poor starting point because they
know it has been sent to all their competitors. It therefore stands to reason
that there can be other ways of creating a story – and some of them can be
just as effective, if not more.
One of the best ways of getting a journalist’s attention, in fact, is to tip
them off without a press release. This implies an exclusive lead, something
guaranteed to get any reporter’s attention. It also implies the �news’ has not
been gestating in some corporate communications department for weeks, so
it might actually be worth hearing. Even for an off-the-cuff tip-off, though,
it helps to have some written material prepared, whether in the form of a
sheet of bullet points or a carefully crafted email.
From a copywriter’s perspective, the benefit of using this method is that it
can help you steer clear of situations where you think a press release will
involve a lot of work with little reward, either for yourself or for the client.
Because they are seen to be official documents, press releases often have
to go through immensely complicated approvals procedures and, once
released, can lurk in files forever after, with potentially damaging
consequences. A backgrounder or tip-off email, on the other hand, can be
prepared very easily and might even increase the chances of coverage in the
long run.
7. Other Types of Press Material
Although press releases are the mainstay of public relations work, a number
of other types of material exists. The most common ones are:
200 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Press packs
The term press pack refers to a collection of information handed out at
events and briefings. It will usually consist of a branded folder, which may or
may not contain copy, plus a press release and photographs.
There may also be other ingredients, such as a company brochure,
product background, CD-ROMs and so on. If you take a brief for a press
pack, the first thing to ascertain is what items will go into it and what the
individual copy requirements will be for each.
Backgrounders
Also called fact-sheets, these are usually one-page documents with
information listed as bullet points. For businesses, backgrounders may
include the number of employees, annual turnover, milestones and so on.
Backgrounders can be easy to put together with some desk research using,
for example, the internet and/or corporate literature such as an annual
statement.
By-lined features
By-lined features usually take the form of opinion pieces attributed to a
senior client and ghost-written by a PR executive or copywriter. The length,
subject matter and tone will often largely be set by the editor of the
publication accepting the piece, but overly commercial messages are
generally to be avoided. Instead, concentrate on researching the relevant
subject matter by means of an interview with a knowledgeable contact in the
client’s organisation.
Case studies
Case studies are intended to show a particular service, product or application
in action and are used in a variety of ways. Often they provide useful
background to a story, sometimes they are used to illustrate an article and
sometimes they form the basis of a story on their own.
Writing for Public Relations / 201
The exact format for case studies varies from one project to another, but
they are usually longer than press releases (between 500 and 1,000 words
instead of 250 to 500 for a press release). They also tend to follow a
different narrative thread: possibly a summary or introduction, followed by a
market overview, a statement of the challenge faced by the business in
question, a section on how the challenge was overcome, and a conclusion,
possibly ending in a stand-alone quote. If you are taking a brief for this kind
of work it is often a good idea to ask the client for examples of the kind of
thing they are expecting, so you know how to write it up. Case studies need
to have page numbers and contact details, just like press releases.
Picture captions
As its name indicates, the purpose of a picture caption is to provide
additional information to go with photography. Since some stories are
pitched to picture desks on the strength of images alone, however, PR
picture captions need to be much more extensive than those used in the
press. In effect, they should be written up as mini press releases, no more
than a sheet long but with the same attention to headlines, intros, contacts
and so on.
Forward planning notices
The forward planning notice is commonly used to make sure an event is
booked into media diaries. Exact styles vary, but to be effective a forward
planning notice should be headed as such and obviously needs to include
details such as what is happening, when and where. State the nature of the
event – press conference, photo call or other – so an editor can assign the
right person to cover it, and as always make sure you include the contact
details of PR representatives.
Interview opportunities
Interview opportunity notices are predominantly aimed at radio show
producers and are effectively a special form of forward planning notice.
202 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
The one-page notice should state who is available for interview, why they
are worth talking to, when they will be able to go on air, and whether or
not they will be available in a studio.
White papers
See the entry in the next chapter.
16
Writing for Sales
and Sales Promotion
1. Types of Sales Copy
In this chapter I have lumped together a whole range of types of
copywriting that are all more or less directly connected with selling to
consumers or businesses (aside from direct marketing, of course, which is
covered in Chapter 11). At one end of the spectrum are brochures and
leaflets, material which might be considered the classic domain of the
marketing copywriter. At the other are specialist documents such as media
packs, white papers, point-of-sale (PoS) materials and other types of sales
collateral.
The basic rules of good writing (Chapter 8) apply to all these types of
projects, just as they do to other copywriting disciplines. The key point of
any sales copy is to get straight to the point and bring out benefits, not
features, up front.
Here is a brief account of some of the major types of sales promotion
work and a few of the copywriting considerations they throw up.
2. Brochures
Historically the mainstay of any sales push, brochures have lost out to
websites as a way of reaching out to customers in recent times, but still
represent a major potential source of work for professional copywriters. The
aim of most brochures is to help in the sales process by providing
information, although text is only one element in this. Often much of the
take-out from a brochure is subliminal, with high-quality printing, expensive
203
204 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
photography and so on all working together to create an image of
professionalism that the customer will, ideally, buy into. The design,
consequently, is every bit as important as the words. For the copywriter, this
usually means brochure projects will involve working closely alongside a
designer or, at least, having a good idea of what the layout will look like,
and writing to fit in with the themes and word counts dictated by the
design.
When taking a brief for a brochure, find out who exactly the publication
is aimed at and how it will be used. If possible, talk to the sales force directly
to find out what they need to help with their work; it could be a very
different animal from that envisaged by, say, the marketing department. If
you can, why not go a step further and talk to a few customers, too, to get
their views on what will work. On large projects this kind of research may
already be factored into the production process.
Check to see what response mechanism needs to be mentioned. Will
customers be directed to a website, a freephone number or something
similar? And finally, query any information, such as price lists, which might
be time-sensitive. Brochures are notoriously costly to produce and your
client will not be pleased if their investment is outdated within a few weeks
of publication. (For the same reason, be extra careful about checking for
mistakes in your copy. You certainly will not be thanked if grammatical or
spelling errors crop up in the finished product.)
When drafting your copy, keep it as short as possible. Few customers
have the time or the inclination to plough through masses of text.
3. Leaflets, Flyers and Posters
Used above all to promote events, the main ingredients for flyers and
posters are a simple, eye-catching headline and an obvious response
mechanism. Most of the rest of the copy should be devoted to details such
as the date, time, location, the cost of tickets and so on. Since the amount
Writing for Sales and Sales Promotion / 205
of copywriting involved is minimal, it is hardly worth trying to charge much
for this kind of work. It also helps to work alongside a designer.
Leaflets involve more copy but, again, are unlikely to be backed by large
budgets. Their production does not normally entail any particular
difficulties; as per any other job, be sure to cover any queries in your brief
and then write simply and succinctly with your target audience in mind.
4. Point-of-Sale Materials
Point-of-sale (also known in the trade as PoS) is a blanket term for all the
posters, stickers, cut-outs, holders and so on that go on and around product
stands in a shop. It is an area of crucial importance to the retail industry,
since getting customers to buy even one per cent more of a given product
can translate to millions of pounds’ worth of profits. The main requirements
from a copywriting perspective are simple, eye-catching, design-led
messages. Space is often at a premium on PoS materials and your message
may need to be seen from several feet away, so stick with a few words and
write them large.
In your brief, find out what the PoS will look like, how big it will be and
how it will be used or positioned in store. Also check whether you need to
incorporate special pieces of text, such as terms and conditions.
5. On-Pack
The requirements for on-pack copy are largely dictated by design guidelines
and official or regulatory notices, leaving very little margin for creative input.
The label on a soft drink, for example, has to accommodate the name of the
product, the price, ingredients and nutritional information, plus recycling
and disposal logos and other design elements. Even if you are involved at
the concept stage, working on product packaging can be fairly frustrating.
Something as simple as a name can be hard to pin down because of the
number of contenders that have already been registered and, often, the need
to test every option through consumer research.
206 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
If you are offered this kind of work, my advice would be to always quote
on a day-rate basis so that you are covered in the event of the project
dragging out over a long period of time.
6. Media Packs
Media packs are used by magazines, newspapers, broadcast stations and
websites to sell space to advertisers. Their key function is to provide
audience and pricing information so that media planners and buyers will
include the title or channel on their advertising schedules. Much of the
information, for example on the demographic breakdown of the audience, is
best provided in graphic format. For the rest, keep copy to a minimum;
media pack readers are ultimately more interested in the figures than in the
words. However, it is a good idea to find out during your briefing whether
there is anything that sets the publication, channel or site apart from its
competitors, and bringing this out in the text.
Confusingly, if you work in PR (see previous chapter), you may find that
�press packs’ are sometimes referred to as �media packs’. Obviously the two
are quite different, so make sure you know what you are talking about.
7. Case Studies
Used predominantly in business-to-business pitches, case studies or client
references in sales promotion follow roughly the same rules as in PR (see
previous chapter). However, given the concerns of the target audience, it is
usually more pertinent to cover financial information – how much was saved
or gained from using a product, and so on.
8. White Papers
A white paper, in the context of sales collateral, is a quasi-academic essay
covering a particular area of industrial development. They are used
exclusively in a business-to-business context and usually to promote a
Writing for Sales and Sales Promotion / 207
technology, format or platform rather than a particular product. Typically
they are quite long – up to around 5,000 words – and can be very technical.
They are expected to be relatively objective, covering the pros and cons of
different options in the area being discussed. Extensive research may be
needed in developing a white paper; you will probably want to have access
to research, statistics, case studies and so on to make sure that you can write
competently about the subject. Break your copy up into sections and include
any relevant diagrams you can get your hands on.
9. Dealing With Sales People
Talking to sales people in any organisation can be a very enlightening
process because, unlike marketers or staff in any other function, these people
are in contact with the customers that keep the business afloat. Taking a
brief on any sales promotion or collateral project can give you a real insight
into how a company is seen by its customers, which can help you with other
projects for the same client or even for projects with other clients in a similar
industry sector.
At the same time, however, dealing directly with sales people or teams can
be frustrating because they can sometimes have a much less clear idea of
what they want to say. Faced with the pressure of always having to meet
targets, sales people, one suspects, are tempted to try to fit products into
whatever shape a client appears to want, with the end result that they might
not always be able to gauge what it is that has attracted the customer to the
product in the first place.
Sales people and teams are also very demanding and may require a certain
amount of ego-massaging and expectation management. Be clear about
timescales, costs, production constraints and so on. Finally, be upfront about
how and how much your work can or will benefit them personally – most
sales people are ultimately motivated by personal gain.
208 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
10. Working With Designers
Since so much of the material described above has a heavy design element, it
is worth saying a thing or two at this point regarding designers.
The first thing to know about design is that, compared with copywriting,
it is not cheap. Designers charge by the hour and will often work on rates of
ВЈ700 to ВЈ1,000 a day. Furthermore, they effectively have a monopoly over
work after it reaches their studios, as only they can make changes to text,
images and layout once it is on the page.
What this means in practice is that, for the sake of your client and their
budget, you need to ensure as far as possible that all changes to your copy
are made before it goes off to design. You may well have to educate your
clients on this point; many naively assume they can carry on making changes
to copy once page layouts start coming through, and then get a nasty shock
when the design bill arrives. Clearly, worrying about design budgets should
not be a major concern for you unless you are managing the entire project,
but avoiding excess design bills can prevent headaches all round and help
keep the client happy – a good way of ensuring repeat business.
If your work regularly involves a design element, it is worth cultivating
a partnership with a design agency so you can offer a �dual service’ to
your clients. Conversely, design agencies can be good sources of work
in themselves, as they often handle large publishing jobs and rarely
have any in-house copywriting resource.
17
Writing for Other Media
1. An Infinite Variety
In the preceding chapters I have tried to cover the most common types of
work you are likely to come across as a copywriter. Each one of these areas
would easily merit a book in its own right, and what I have tried to provide
are some brief notes on some of the issues you need to bear in mind when
approaching the work, rather than an exhaustive guide to each discipline.
As you become established you will probably find that most of your work
tends to fall into a particular category or set of categories, and you will
undoubtedly be keen to learn more by reference to more specialised
texts.
In this chapter I cover a number of other potential writing assignments
you might encounter. Some of these, such as speech writing and producing
technical documents, are important specialist areas in their own right, and
tend to be assigned to writers with proven skills rather than mainstream
copywriters. Others, such as drafting slide presentations, are of lesser
importance in terms of their likely revenue potential. I have listed this
diverse group of subjects in alphabetical order.
My personal experience in many of these areas is limited, so what
I have to offer by way of advice is more in the form of thoughts and first
impressions than hard-and-fast rules. I hope, however, that what follows will
be enough to help you go into a brief with a fairly good idea of what to ask
and look for. From then on, you should be able to build up a skill base from
your own learning.
209
210 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
I have tried to make this list as exhaustive as possible, but there is
almost no end to the potential kinds of jobs you might be asked to take
on as a copywriter. If you are ever stumped for guidance on a particular
project, remember that producing simple, succinct and clear copy will
almost always meet your client’s needs.
2. Blurbs
The Pocket Oxford Dictionary describes a blurb as a �publisher’s (usually
eulogistic) description of a book’. In copywriting terms, however, it can
mean almost any sort of summary of a larger work that is used for
promotional purposes. Its prime purpose is to sell the larger work to
interested audiences, so the first job for the writer is to look for messages
that will appeal to them.
The sorts of things you might consider include:
в—†
an overview (�The first truly comprehensive work of its kind’)
в—†
excerpts from the work
в—†
testimonials from satisfied customers
в—†
statements regarding the usefulness or value of the work (�Buy this and
watch your profits go through the roof’)
в—†
or a combination of the above.
When drafting your copy, pay close attention to the length of your text and use
emotive words that have immediate appeal for the reader. Avoid jargon and
technical terms; bear in mind that the reader will probably give your blurb a
couple of seconds’ attention, at most, before deciding whether or not to move on.
As in many forms of promotional writing, it is not unusual for blurbs to
incorporate a measure of artistic licence. How far you go down this route
is up to you; in my opinion it is better to concentrate on selling the good points
of a poor piece of work than trying to make the entire work out to be something
it is not.
Writing for Other Media / 211
Rates for this kind of work tend not to be particularly generous since
the amount of copy involved is usually very small. However it can take
time to skim through a book or other document in order to produce an
informed blurb, so be realistic about what you charge and do not take
on projects unless they appear to be worthwhile.
3. Business Plans
A business plan is a short document that companies use to outline their
strategies for growth and development. They are useful documents for any
management team and are usually the main basis on which outside agencies,
such as banks and venture capitalists, will consider funding. Writing or
editing business plans can provide another occasional source of copywriting
work although you need to be aware that the most critical element of any
business plan is not the words it contains, but the figures.
If you are going to do this kind of work, it can help to have written a
business plan yourself, perhaps for your own business, and to have presented
it to potential partners or backers. If you lack this kind of experience, I
would advise talking to your bank manager or someone similar to find out
what they like and do not like to see in the business plans they receive. This
basic feedback can be very useful in advising clients in start-up businesses or
those who have not written a plan before.
If a company is willing to pay for external help in putting together its
business plan, it almost always means the document will be used to secure
funding, either for a new launch or for business expansion. This means it
will be seen exclusively by people who may be in a position to hand over
large amounts of cash. These people will be looking, first and foremost, for
evidence that they, too, can make money on the deal.
Hence the importance of the figures. An investor is usually looking for a
decent return on their money after about three years. In many cases, this return
will be by way of a trade sale or public listing. They will therefore want to see
tangible evidence that their investment will help the business grow in value,
and that it will be secure in the first place.
212 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
While the figures should always be put together, or at least checked, by a
qualified professional such as an accountant, there is scope for a copywriter
to add value elsewhere. If the numbers add up, the potential investor will
next look to see whether the business strategy makes sense and is backed by
a capable management team. A well-written document can help create an
image of professionalism that the investor will feel comfortable about buying
into.
If you are helping write a plan from scratch, you will need to sit down
with the management team and understand their business in detail. You will
need to pin down what opportunities it faces, and how the team expects to
capitalise on them.
You will also need to find out what threats it faces, and what steps it has
taken or will take to avoid them. Additional desk research may be needed
into the market in general and into how the business is perceived in the
marketplace by its customers.
Finally, you need to assemble detailed biographies of the main members
of the management team. It can also be helpful to carry out a SWOT
analysis of the business, if the management team has not done so already.
SWOT stands for Strengths, Weaknesses, Opportunities and Threats – four
headings that can be used to summarise a business’s market position (for
more on this and on other useful techniques for business and career
development, see www.mindtools.com). A SWOT analysis of your own
business might look something like this:
Strengths
Weaknesses
– Established, international
– Reliant on two major clients
client list
for most of income
– Reputation
Opportunities
Threats
– Expansion into new
– Lack of networking could
markets
– Potential to grow existing
client work
lose clients
– Market downturn could
affect client budgets
Writing for Other Media / 213
The business plan itself needs to include the following sections:
в—†
An executive summary of no more than three pages (and preferably one),
which can act as a stand-alone document and sells the business to
potential investors, and with a brief summary of the company’s market
position, prospects, plan for growth and management team.
в—†
An account of the company’s market positioning and the trends it hopes
to exploit.
в—†
A summary of the company’s competitive environment, with its plans to
cope with competition.
в—†
A description of the business processes the company uses, plus notes on
how they will be used or modified for competitive advantage.
в—†
Any other factors, such as marketing or promotion, relevant to the
business’s plans for growth.
в—†
Details of the management team and, in particular, their track record in
running and growing businesses in the past.
в—†
Detailed revenue, cash-flow and profit-and-loss projections spanning at
least three years. These can be included as appendices.
In total, the document should not be more than about ten pages, plus appendices.
A good business plan can be worth millions of pounds for a business.
If you feel you can add value to it, you should feel justified in
charging a premium for the work.
4. Manuals and Technical Documents
As anyone who has struggled with a video or TV instruction book will
know, clarity and simplicity are the two most important things to bear in
mind when writing manuals.
214 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Putting together this kind of material also requires, unsurprisingly, a
detailed knowledge of the technology or process you are describing. Being
able to test the product yourself is vitally important; make notes as you use
it, not only so you can describe what to do, but also so you can describe
what to do if things go wrong.
It is likely you may have to work closely with a graphic designer. Where
possible, rely on pictures rather than words to describe processes as they are
clearer and easier to understand.
Beyond advice already covered in Chapter 8 about writing clearly, the
exact nature of each technical writing job is likely to depend on the type of
product involved. If possible, I would advise trying to get hold of either an
earlier version of the manual or a similar document from a competitor, and
using it to look for areas that could be improved.
5. Presentations
Presentations have become an integral part of many businesses and business
processes, and are used in situations that range from internal
communications briefings to sales pitches to shareholder meetings. The vast
majority of presentations nowadays are created using a computer program
called Microsoft PowerPoint, but there is a tendency towards more
sophisticated audiovisual packages incorporating video and animation on
intranets or CD-ROM. Basic presentations may consist of little more than a
few bullet points on some slides adorned with clip art, and are usually
produced in-house. Nevertheless, there are occasional opportunities for
copywriters in this area. You may be asked, for example, to create a
PowerPoint version of some work carried out elsewhere; or edit an existing
presentation; or even put one together as a stand-alone project. Needless to
say, you will need to have access to PowerPoint for this kind of work. At the
time of writing, the package costs around ВЈ300 on its own (more if you
need it for an Apple Mac) but you can usually have it bundled in with other
software when you buy your computer.
You will be unsurprised to know that the basic skill in writing or editing
presentations is to have a good idea of who the communication is aimed at,
Writing for Other Media / 215
and what will appeal to them. All too often, for example, pitch presentations
stick to the following format: �here’s who we are’, �here’s what we do’,
�here’s how we do it’, �here’s what we can do for you’, �here’s what it could
mean for your business’. Personally, I would be amazed if this approach ever
worked. The people who have to sit through these presentations are usually
busy executives. Their first concern is likely to be �what’s in this for me?’ not
�who are these guys?’, although I would not be surprised if that question
popped up too after ten minutes of a traditional presentation.
I usually advise turning the traditional pitch presentation structure on its
head, so that it reads something like this: �here’s what we can do for you’,
�here’s how we do it’, �here’s who we are so you know you can trust us’.
This should, hopefully, get the audience’s attention right from the off.
Other types of presentation may require slightly different structures
but the bottom line is always: work out what is most relevant to the
audience and say it up front. Leave the hows and the whos until later.
Other tips
Here is a list of other things to do that will not only enhance the look and
readability of your presentation, but also make it easier for the presenter to
run through.
в—†
Stick to between three and six bullet points per slide.
в—†
Avoid background colours that clash or disguise text or images.
в—†
Keep to a consistent style throughout your presentation, with fixed sizes
and fonts for headlines and body copy.
в—†
Make all points roughly the same length – say, one or two lines each.
в—†
Avoid headlines of more than one line.
в—†
Avoid bullet points of three lines or more unless they are there for good
reason, for example as a stand-alone quote.
216 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
Try to present data in the form of charts and diagrams rather than tables.
в—†
Beware of vastly complicated diagrams that are difficult to read and
convey little information.
в—†
Use animation intelligently to improve the impact of each point and stick
to a common animation theme throughout the presentation.
6. Speech Writing
Writing good speeches is an art for which people get paid a lot of money,
not least because a great speech has the potential to move people far more
profoundly than almost any other form of communication. (Let’s face it:
politicians do not make it to power by writing great newspaper articles.)
Much of this power, however, comes from the delivery rather than the
substance of a speech.
Great speakers recognise that their best material comes from the heart
and, if they employ a scriptwriter at all, will usually insist on polishing off
the final draft themselves to inject something of their own personality into it.
At a lower level, however, clients often resort to writers to help them
come up with material for events such as conferences, presentations and
networking sessions. When taking a brief for this kind of work, you need to
find out how detailed the draft needs to be. Some speakers prefer to ad-lib
off the back of a set of detailed notes or bullet points. Others need a
word-by-word script. Also check to see what other materials the speaker will
be using, in case you need to reference them in the speech. If you can,
interview the speaker on their chosen subject so that you can ascertain their
line of thought and pick up on any favourite phrases.
Wake the audience up
Next you need to be aware of what makes a good speech. For a start, as is
the case with so many other forms of writing, it has to capture the
audience’s attention with a simple, strong emotional message right at the
beginning.
Writing for Other Media / 217
This is why many speakers kick off with a joke. They are not trying to
appear funny, but they know that laughing is a gut reaction and if they can
raise a chuckle they have secured an emotional response. Other ways of
engaging the audience can include posing a topical question, making a
controversial assertion or bringing up a well-known quote. I have even seen
speakers ask their audience to stand up and interact with each other in some
way. This is the last thing a group of passive listeners wants to do, so it
forces a strong emotional response; the audience may sit back down
thinking �What was all that about? This had better be worth it . . .’, but by
now, at least, they are all ears.
Keep them awake
After giving the audience a jolt that gets their attention, the speaker then
needs to hold onto it for the main part of the speech. Here, the key is to
map out each step in the argument and phrase it in clear, simple language.
As a writer, you may have little or no control over the way your speech is
delivered; stick to short, familiar words so that each point can be understood
even if the speaker ends up mumbling through a faulty mike. And avoid
long, technical terms that might trip up the person on the stage.
Remember, also, that you are writing spoken words. Your speech needs to
read like a script, with bridges, asides and references. Also, like a script, it
needs to contain occasional prompts and jolts to make sure the audience
does not drift off. Ask rhetorical questions. Raise unusual examples. Above
all, talk to the audience, not at them. Use phrases like �what would you do?’
and �you’ve all been in a situation where . . .’
Leave them wanting more
Unlike, say, writing for the press, where you leave your least important
information till last, a speech is an event – and you want to go out with a
bang, not a whimper. The ending is every bit as important as the beginning.
The best way to achieve a grand finale is to quickly repeat the main points
in your argument (but make it quick – no more than a few seconds) – then
deliver The Big Message. This is the key point of the whole speech,
218 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
summarised in a single line. Get controversial. Needless to say, you are
looking to get an emotional response from your audience.
The Big Message has to hit them in the gut, not the brains. Nothing is
too strong. Instead of: �So, you see, our industry will have to adapt to these
changes or face the consequences,’ how about: �If your business is ready to
adapt, then I’ll see you back here next year. If not, I’d advise you to start
looking for a new job, now.’
Other considerations
When preparing your copy, rehearse it out loud and time yourself to make
sure it is the right length. Studies have shown that the average audience has
an attention span of 1,000 seconds – just over quarter of an hour. Try to
keep your speech to within this time and leave the rest of the presentation
for questions.
Also, pay attention to the layout of your draft. Put copy into a single
column down the side of the page, so it is easier to read, and highlight key
words and phrases in bold or italics. If the presentation involves slides or
other props, show clearly to which ones different paragraphs relate.
Speech writing is a rare skill which makes a lot of demands on the
writer and commands a premium in the marketplace. Once you have
taken on a number of projects in this area you will be able to get a feel
for the kinds of charges you can demand, but in the first instance I
would suggest quoting two or three times what you would normally
ask for a standard writing job of a similar size.
7. Video Scripts
The rising popularity of video, thanks to broadband distribution, has led to
an increasing demand for scripts among corporate clients. Typically, a client
might want to shoot a short video that will go on their website, be
distributed internally via an intranet, or be shown at events such as sales
conferences. The kinds of scriptwriting assignments you could be called
Writing for Other Media / 219
upon to produce might range from voiceovers for simple animated
presentations to full scripts for expensive productions. Some tips for
handling this kind of work include:
в—†
Be aware of timing. Do not go much over 100 words of speech per
minute. Most corporate videos are only about three or four minutes long
at most (as anything longer costs too much and causes viewers to drift
off), so you are looking at about 400 words at most. You will find it
quite challenging to get everything you want to say into that word count.
So aim for a miracle of direct, concise communication and cut out
anything that sounds vaguely technical or waffly.
в—†
In the same vein, make sure the language you use is as simple, direct and
colloquial as possible. Remember your audience cannot go back and read
a line again if they don’t get it first time, so make sure they get it first
time. Use short words and everyday language. Write as you would speak.
Switch on the TV or radio news and listen to the way that newsreaders
explain complex subjects, then try to do the same.
в—†
Think in pictures. Even if you know the budget does not stretch to
exotic locations or special effects, try to think of props, backdrops and
ways to liven up your video so it does not end up as a talking head
speaking to the camera. Similarly, if your video has to explain something
very complex, like the offside rule in soccer for instance, then see if it is
possible to do this visually rather than having to explain it in the narrative.
в—†
Keep to a standard script format for your copy. Use a large, easily
readable font such as 12-point Courier. Double-space your text. Break
up the copy into lots of paragraphs.
в—†
Re-read your text out loud when you have finished drafting it. The
chances are you will find a whole bunch of phrases that are virtually
impossible to say properly. Break them apart and re-work them until they
sound right. Also watch out for missing words, words that might be
difficult to pronounce and other possible traps for the speaker or
narrator. Consider phonetic spelling for tricky or unfamiliar names.
220 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
в—†
By all means, use stage directions, but do not overdo them. Turning the
script into a video is someone else’s job – you just take care of making
sure the words are right.
See as well my comments on speech writing (above) and TV advertising in
Chapter 10, which the notes above also apply to.
8. Other Types of Writing
There are almost limitless types of projects you could be called upon to
handle as a writer, spanning industries as diverse as book publishing and
film. Going into all of them is beyond the scope of this book. But it is safe
to say that the basics of copywriting that will help you establish your
business will also stand you in good stead to take on almost any contract
that comes your way.
18
Beyond Copywriting
1. Where Next?
Halfway through writing this book, I upped sticks and left the UK to live in
Spain. It was a lifestyle decision, but one that was made possible purely
because of the nature of my work. At the time of writing, my business is
healtheir than ever. The only real change is that most of my contact with
my British clients is over the phone rather than face to face.
The point of this story is that it illustrates how running your own
copywriting business, whilst fulfilling in itself, can also provide a springboard
to many other opportunities. This chapter is all about answering the
question: once my business is established, what happens next?
I shall not pretend to be able to answer that question in full, but
hopefully the following paragraphs will give you some pointers on the
direction your business could take in future.
If you want to expand your business, you face two options: look at
ways of increasing the range and/or value of the services you offer, or
expand by taking on partners or staff. Both can often be easier if you
cultivate skills in a particular industry.
2. Sticking To Your Guns
The easiest option if you have a successful copywriting business is to stick
with it. You may well be happy with your level of income and the lifestyle
your work provides. If you are concerned about future prospects, bear in
mind that your earning potential is likely to go up in line with your
221
222 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
experience in particular fields. As you become more adept and efficient at
producing copy, you will find that you can fit more projects into your
schedule and so boost your overall income. Plus your network of contacts
will grow over time, so you will see more referrals.
A final point worth making is that, strange though it may sound, being a
self-employed copywriter can be more secure than having full-time
employment in times of recession. At the turn of the millennium many of
my friends with jobs in the marketing, media, new media and creative
industries were made redundant as a result of the downturn in advertising
and technology. I, too, found it harder to get work, but at least I had a
range of clients to provide me with income, instead of a single paymaster.
3. Consultancy
As your knowledge of the trade and its related industries grows, you may
find you can progress from providing copywriting services to consultancy.
The difference between the two is that consultancy is usually concerned with
elements of strategy, while service is concerned with delivery of specific
campaigns or projects. Strategic issues may include, for example, the
development of coherent guidelines for communications across a business;
the formulation of policies and processes governing internal and external
communications; or the introduction of new communications channels, such
as websites or magazines. Because these initiatives may have a wide-ranging
impact on the client’s business, the consultant is usually seen as providing
greater value than the service provider, and can therefore charge more.
Moving into consultancy takes a degree of confidence in one’s abilities
plus a fair amount of luck in spotting opportunities in the market. It is not
necessarily a guarantee of stable income, either, since the demand for
consultancy can fluctuate widely and communications is an area that is not
often considered worthy of outside help. In the long run, you may find that
it is best to provide consultancy along with your normal copywriting services
and offer either to clients as the opportunity arises.
Beyond Copywriting / 223
4. Marketing
Another potential spin-off from your copywriting business is the ability to
offer wider marketing support. This can be particularly valuable to start-up
companies that do not have an in-house marketing person or team. To
provide solid advice, however, you may need to have more than just
copywriting skills; experience in managing wider marketing campaigns can
be important if you are to be sure you can handle logistical, legal and other
issues. With luck, you may be able to work on projects that give you
exposure to this kind of activity in the course of your copywriting career.
5. Brand and Corporate Identity
With experience in identifying target markets and learning how to
communicate with them, you may find that you are well qualified to work
on wider projects relating to branding and corporate identity. Most
businesses rightly place great value on their name, company logo and any
attendant strap lines or descriptors. Being involved in branding or
re-branding exercises can be highly rewarding but requires painstaking
research and in-depth knowledge of areas such as copyright – one reason
why large corporate identity projects are usually handled by specialist
agencies that are able to charge a premium for their services.
Further down the line, however, there are opportunities for copywriters
in terms of the development of corporate materials that reflect the
newly-created corporate ethos.
If you are seriously interested in breaking into this area, it is
worth teaming up with a graphic design team so that you
can offer a full service to clients.
224 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
6. Setting Up Your Own Agency
The most obvious path to follow once your business has proved a success is
to expand it in the traditional manner, taking on staff or partners to absorb
extra work and increase profits. Expansion of a pure copywriting business
can be problematic, however, which is one reason why large copywriting
agencies are pretty rare.
For a start, copywriters tend to be chosen on the basis of individual skills
and your clients might not appreciate you handing their work on to a
colleague or subordinate. The margins involved in supplying copy, while
ample for an individual or a small business, might not be sufficient to
support additional staff. And it is easier to build a brand if you are
recognised in having expertise in one of the industries that consumes
copy, such as advertising, direct mail, the web, journalism or public
relations.
If you can claim particular expertise in one of these areas and want to
expand your business, it might be an idea to consider setting up an
advertising, direct mail, web, press or public relations agency that can
provide copywriting as part of a range of services relevant to the
industry.
7. Creative Writing
Copywriting does not provide, as such, a route into creative writing.
However, if you are keen to write novels, movie scripts and the like, there
can be distinct advantages to starting out as a copywriter. To begin with,
you will already be working with words and so will have had to grapple with
many of the minutiae of the writer’s trade, from managing your own time
to learning what you can and cannot offset against tax. You will also be
accustomed to pitching your written work, which can be a great help when
submitting your first manuscript. You will be used to writing quickly and
meeting deadlines. Importantly, too, the fact that you are already
a professional writer might count in your favour when contacting editors.
The only drawback in working as a copywriter is that you might find
Beyond Copywriting / 225
you are heartily sick of the keyboard by the time you sit down to bash
out your opus.
Unless you are churning out best-seller material, however, beware that it
could be some time before your income from creative writing matches what
you get from commercial copywriting. Do not give up your day job!
Sources and References
These sources of information are far from exhaustive – each will probably
lead you on to a number of others. Included here are reference sources and
organisations that I have mentioned in the text and that you may find
useful or essential in setting up your business, plus any other sources that I
have come across in the course of my work that I think may be of interest to
you.
Please note that some of these sources (websites particularly) may cease to
be available as time passes. If you find this is the case, or come across other
references that you think are equally useful, then please let me know by
emailing me at mail@jasondeign.com, so that I can update this section in
future editions of this book. Also, you might want to have a look at
my own website, www.jasondeign.com, for other, more up-to-date reference
sources.
Finally, bear in mind that a listing in this section does not constitute an
endorsement!
Chapter 1: Why Become A Copywriter?
For background information, training and more you might want to contact
the Institute of Copywriting, Overbrook Business Centre, Poolbridge
Road, Blackford, Wedmore, Somerset BS28 4PA. Tel: (019) 3471 3563.
Fax: (019) 3471 3492. Web: www.inst.org/copy
226
Sources and References / 227
Chapter 2: Getting Started
Her Majesty’s Revenue and Customs (HMRC) offers tax and
employment advice and has local offices all around the country – the
nearest one to you will be listed in the phone book. The department’s
website is at www.hmrc.gov.uk
Companies House is at Crown Way, Maindy, Cardiff CF14 3UZ.
Tel 0870 3333636. Web: www.companieshouse.gov.uk,
www.companieshouse.co.uk
Most internet portals incorporate domain name registration services which
allow you to see whether the online name you want to register for your
business is available.
Other sources of advice are banks (if you open a business account you will
be offered the services of a business adviser), Business Link
(www.businesslink.org, a national network of advice centres for small
businesses) and the Federation of Small Businesses at www.fsb.org.uk
See also www.britishchambers.org.uk for your local Chamber of Commerce;
the Department for Business, Enterprise and Regulatory Reform
(www.berr.gov.uk); www.smallbusiness.co.uk;
www.smallbusinessadvice.org.uk; www.j4b.co.uk for information on
grants for business and industry; and www.startups.co.uk for start-up
grants. Most of these sources of information are free of charge, but some
may require a subscription fee, so do check first. Lastly, do not forget to
look up trade associations and fellow business owners for advice.
Chapter 3: Getting Kitted Out
For computers and peripherals see the websites of the major manufacturers
– www.apple.com, www.hp.com, www.dell.com, www.sony.com and so
on – or online shops like www.buy.com or www.argos.co.uk or search a
shopping comparison engine like www.kelkoo.co.uk
Microsoft: www.microsoft.com
Other useful websites for handling online material are: www.winzip.com
(for unpacking compressed files downloaded from the internet),
228 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
www.adobe.com (for Adobe Acrobat Reader, a program which is used to
view documents over the net) and www.real.com (for RealPlayer, which
is required to view video clips or listen to audio files from sources such as
the BBC).
Webmail providers include www.hotmail.com, www.yahoo.com,
www.lycos.com, www.gmail.com and others. If you have a website, check
to see if your web hosting company offers web mail.
Antivirus software can be obtained from www.mcafee.com,
www.symantec.com or www.sophos.com
The Zone Alarm firewall can be downloaded from www.zonealarm.com
For the latest on internet service providers, consult a specialist magazine
such as Web User, a monthly publication from IPC (subscriptions: 0845
676 7778).
Chapter 4: Where To Work
For serviced offices, look in your local Yellow Pages under Office Rental, or
go through a large national company such as Regus (www.regus.com).
Details of IR35 can be found on the HMRC website,
www.hmrc.gov.uk/ir35/ and various other sources. The
AccountingWEB site, www.accountingweb.co.uk, has a large amount of
information on the subject, as do many of the sites belonging to large
accountancy firms; a search for �IR35’ on a search engine such as Google
(www.google.com) will uncover the main ones.
Chapter 5: Book Keeping for Copywriters
See entries under previous chapters for the contact details for organisations
such as HMRC.
The Motley Fool (www.fool.co.uk) has information on pensions and other
financial products.
If you are worried about managing cash flow, the Better Payment Practice
Group has lots of information about your statutory rights and advice on
Sources and References / 229
how to make sure you are paid on time. It has several publications which
can be downloaded from www.payontime.co.uk or ordered on (0870)
150 2500.
Chapter 6: How To Find Work – and Keep It
Online work exchanges include Guru (www.guru.com), E-lance
(www.elance.com) and Smarterwork (www.smarterwork.com); these are
all US sites which, nevertheless, may offer UK and European work.
For website hosting, try your internet service provider. The hosting service
I use at the time of writing is provided by UK2 (www.uk2.net). It is dirt
cheap but offers an appalling service; approach at your peril!
For building websites, try Teach Yourself HTML Visually by Ruth Maran
(Hungry Minds, ISBN 0-7645-3423-8), available from Amazon
(www.amazon.co.uk); further tips on HTML and other web
programming languages can be found at www.w3.org
Web authoring software packages include Fusion from NetObjects
(www.netobjects.com) and WebEditor from Namo (www.namo.com).
Other online resources for website design include Jakob Nielsen’s Alertbox
(www.useit.com/alertbox) and the Yale Style Manual
(http://info.med.yale.edu/caim/manual/); if you are uploading your
own web pages you will also need a file transfer protocol (FTP) program
from a company such as Ipswitch (www.ipswitch.com – no relation to the
UK town of the same name!).
Freelance agencies online include Xchangeteam (www.xchangeteam.com)
in the UK.
In the London area, try also Stopgap (Goodwin House, 5 Union Court,
Richmond, Surrey TW9 1AA; tel: (020) 8332 0066, fax: (020) 8332
2747, www.stopgap.co.uk) and Major Players (73-75 Endell Street,
London WC2H 9AJ; tel: (020) 7836 4041, fax: (020) 7836 4009,
www.majorplayers.co.uk).
Finally, look out for ads in magazines such as Marketing, Marketing Week
and Campaign (available from large newsagents such as WHSmiths) and
230 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
their associated websites, such as www.brandrepublic.com and
www.mad.co.uk
Pricing – for guides, speak to agencies or see the National Union of
Journalists website, http://media.gn.apc.org/feesguide/
Chapter 7: Getting Help
Professional bodies include: The Advertising Association, 7th Floor North,
Artillery House, 11-19 Artillery Row, London SW1P 1RT. Tel: (020)
7340 1100. Fax: (020) 7222 1504. www.adassoc.org.uk
The Direct Marketing Association, DMA House, 70 Margaret Street,
London W1W 8SS. Tel: (020) 7291 3300. Fax: (020) 7323 4426.
www.dma.org.uk
The Public Relations Consultants Association, Willow House, Willow Place,
Victoria, London SW1P 1JH. Tel: (020) 7233 6026. Fax: (020) 7828
4797. www.prca.org.uk
The Chartered Institute of Public Relations, 32 St James’s Square, London
SW1Y 4JR. Tel: (020) 7766 3333. Fax: (020) 7766 3344.
www.ipr.org.uk
And the National Union of Journalists (see entry under Chapter 14). For a
fuller list of industry bodies, try the Marketers Portal,
www.marketersportal.com
The Periodical Publishers Association can be contacted at Queens House,
28 Kingsway, London WC2B 6JR. Tel: (020) 7404 4166. Fax: (020)
7404 4167. www.ppa.co.uk
Search engines worth book-marking on your browser include
www.ask.co.uk, www.google.com, www.yahoo.co.uk and
www.ukplus.com
Other useful sites include: www.bt.com (directory enquiries),
www.whatis.com (technical dictionary), http://babelfish.altavista.com/
(translations), http://news.bbc.co.uk/ (news) and www.ananova.com
(news).
Sources and References / 231
Chapter 8: Delivering Great Copy
The basic rules of great copywriting – particularly as they apply to web
copy and especially on topics such as selling benefits, not features, and
using the active rather than passive voice – are covered in detail in the
Grokdotcom newsletter produced by Future Now, a US internet
marketing advisory publisher. To sign up, visit www.grokdotcom.com
How to Win Customers, revised edition: Heinz M. Goldmann, Pan Books
Ltd, ISBN: 0330263013. This book now appears to be out of print, but
may be available from second-hand bookstores or your local library.
Writing for the Web (Writer’s Edition), 1st edition: Crawford Kilian, Self
Counsel Press, ISBN: 1551802074. Available from Amazon.
Chapter 9: Things To Watch Out For
For online dictionaries, visit www.dictionary.com. Other useful sites are
www.wikipedia.org and www.acronymfinder.com
Chapter 10: Writing for Advertising
The main advertising magazine is Campaign. To subscribe, visit
www.brandrepublic.com
For links to a wide range of advertising-related sites, visit the Marketers
Portal at www.marketersportal.com
There is a host of good books worth reading if you are serious about
writing for advertising. Positioning: The Battle for Your Mind, by Al Ries
and Jack Trout (McGraw-Hill Education; ISBN: 0071373586, available
from www.amazon.co.uk) is highly recommended as background reading
on brand positioning. No Logo (Naomi Klein, Flamingo, ISBN:
0006530400, also available from Amazon) provides further interesting
insights into the brand phenomenon.
Fear of Persuasion: A New Perspective on Advertising and Regulation, by
John E. Calfee (Agora, ISBN: 2940124027), is a must-read on how
advertising works, if you can get hold of it.
232 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Scriptwriting sites include Simply Scripts (www.simplyscripts.com).
Scriptware script formatting software is available at www.scriptware.com
Story, by Robert McKee, is published by Methuen (ISBN: 0413715604)
and available from www.amazon.co.uk
Chapter 11: Writing for Direct Mail
Direct Marketing Association: DMA House, 70 Margaret Street, London
W1W 8SS. Tel: (020) 7291 3300. Fax: (020) 7323 4426.
www.dma.org.uk
The Royal Mail website is at www.royalmailgroup.com
Chapter 12: Writing for Internal Communications
Compared with other copywriting disciplines, there is scant reference
material on internal communications. As a first port of call, however, get
in touch with the British Association of Communicators in Business
(Suite GA2, Oak House, Woodlands Business Park, Linford Wood,
Milton Keyes MK14 6EY. Tel: 01908 313 755. Fax: 01908 313 661.
www.cib.uk.com), which among other things can offer listing in its
directory of freelance copywriters.
Chapter 13: Writing for the Internet
If you are serious about online copywriting then I would recommend you
buy the excellent Writing for the Web by Crawford Kilian (Self-counsel
writing series, ISBN 1 55180 207 4), available from Amazon
(www.amazon.co.uk). The book contains details of a number of sites that
are useful to freelance writers.
Future Now’s Grokdotcom newsletter is another must for web copywriters;
www.grokdotcom.com
Sources and References / 233
Chapter 14: Writing for the Press
In the first instance, for general information, contact the National Union
of Journalists at Headland House, 308 Gray’s Inn Road, London WC1X
8DP. Tel: (020) 7278 7916. Fax: (020) 7837 8143; or visit
http://media.gn.apc.org/flindex.html
For copies of The Freelance, contact the London Freelance Branch of the
National Union of Journalists at the address above.
Contact the UK Press Gazette at 6-14 Underwood Street, London N1 7JQ.
Tel: (020) 8269 7828. Fax: (020) 7566 5769, or visit
www.pressgazette.co.uk
For more on feature writing, read Writing Feature Articles: a practical
guide to methods and markets, by Brendan Hennessy (Focal Press, ISBN:
0240514718).
Chapter 15: Writing for Public Relations
See the professional bodies listed under Chapter 7. For other general
information, try also the International Public Relations Association
(IPRA), 1 Dunley Hill Court, Ranmore Common, Dorking, Surrey RH5
6SX. Tel: 01483 280 130. Fax: 01483 280 131.
Chapter 16: Writing for Sales and Sales Promotion
The Institute of Sales Promotion is at Arena House, 66-68 Pentonville
Road, Islington, London N1 9HS. Tel: (020) 7837 5340. Fax: (020)
7837 5326. www.isp.org.uk.
A number of design magazines regularly cover this area, and Centaur’s
In-Store Marketing is specifically devoted to point-of-sale material. See
www.mad.co.uk for details.
234 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
Chapter 18: Beyond Copywriting
For information on expanding your business or setting up an agency, see
the entries above for professional bodies and Business Link; talk also to
your bank and your accountant, if you have one.
Index
abbreviations, 115
accountant, choosing an, 67
fees, claiming back, 62
accountants, 26, 52, 53, 54, 55, 56, 62,
67, 68, 71, 212
accounts
financial, 54
accuracy, 107
in spelling and grammar, 108
versus interest, 109
Adobe Acrobat Reader, 228
ADSL, 35
advertising
brand, 127
promotional, 127
writing for, 126
Advertising Association, The, 88, 135,
230
advertorials, 132
agency
setting up your own, 224
Anglo-Saxon
versus Latin words, 106
apostrophes, 116
Apple Macintosh
advertising, 103, 128, 132
buying an, 29, 30
approvals
dealing with, 155
Ask, 93
attention to detail, 9
audience
immediate, 104
ultimate, 104
authenticity
in press reporting, 178
backgrounders, 200
banner ads, 138, 139
benefits
�not features’, 103, 131
blurbs, 210
book keeping, 53
brand,
positioning, 128
brief
taking a, 82
broadband, 34, 35
brochures, 203
business
naming your, 23
qualities needed to run one, 7
types of, 19
who will be involved?, 17
business acumen, 10
business plan
writing one for your business, 18
writing copy for, 211
business stories
in internal communications, 159
business-to-business
audiences in direct marketing, 146
by-lined features, 200
capital letters
in names, 117
captions
press, 186
car expenses, 62
235
236 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
case studies, 200, 206
cash flow
managing, 65
charging, 83
clichГ©s
avoiding, 124
client, 8
client premises
working from, 49
Companies House, 21, 25, 54, 56, 93,
227
computer
buying a, 28
buying new or second hand, 28
features to look out for, 28
computer peripherals, 36
consultancy
expanding into, 222
contract publishers
working for, 188
contracts, 85
copy, 4
delivering great, 97
how to present, 112
copywriting, what is?, 3
origins of, 4
rates, 13, 83
work, what is it like?, 13
corporate identity
expanding into, 223
covering letters
in direct marketing, 143
creative writing
expanding into, 224
creativity, 8
and using it to sell, 129
in direct mail, 142, 146
Data Protection Act, 141, 146
day-rate, 84
in PR, 192
designers
working with, 208
digital cameras, 37
Direct Marketing Association, 88, 140,
230, 232
direct mail
golden rules for copywriters,
145
writing for, 140
direct response advertising, 134
disposition
needed to set up a copywriting
business, 10
DM. see direct mail
domain name, 24, 77
earnings, 13
international potential, 14
editorial process, 180
elecronic storage systems, 37
email marketing, 147
email newsletters, 150
English
UK or US, 124
exclamation marks, 119
expenses
claiming against tax, 57
fact-sheets, 200
family life
mixing work with, 43
fax machines, 38
features
writing press, 183
fees, 83
finance
expenses, claiming back, 62
firewalls, 33, 228
Flash, 176
Flesch Reading Ease, 102
Flesch-Kincaid Grade Level, 102
flyers, 204
Fog Index, 101
forward planning notices, 201
freelance directories, 75
freelancers
working with others, 90
furniture, 40
grocers’ apostrophes, 116
Google, 93
Index / 237
headlines
press, 185
history of ad copywriting, 4
HMRC, 22, 26, 50, 51, 52, 59, 69, 71,
227, 228
home
working from, 42
Hotmail, 32, 147, 228
HTML, 77, 164, 169
emails, 148
human interest
stories in internal communications, 158
hyperlinks, 169
hypertext, 171
images
on the web, 173
income
sources of, 72
independence
in press reporting, 179
information
sources of press, 181
inspiration
finding, 110
Instant Messaging, 34
Institute of Public Relations, 230
internal communications
managing programmes, 160
processes, 152
writing for, 151
internet
access, 34
origins of, 164
writing for, 164
internet service providers, 34, 165
interruptions
dealing with, 44
interview opportunity notices, 201
invoices, 63
IR35, 50, 51, 52, 228
ISP see internet service providers
jargon, 119
journalism
principles of, 178
junk mail, 140
key messages
in press releases, 198
language
having respect for, 113
laptop
tips on what to look for, 30
versus desktop computer, 30
lawyers, 87
leaflets, 204
legal issues
in direct mail, 146
in working from home, 46
limited company
trading as a, 20
Lotus Notes, 32
magazines
writing for, 188
mailing lists, 141
Mailing Preference Service, 141
manuals
writing, 213
marketing
expanding into, 223
markets
for copy, 5
McAfee, 33, 228
media
in advertising, 134
for internal communications,
161
media packs, 206
meta-tags, 174
mobile phones, 38
Moore’s Law, 37
National Insurance Contributions, 25,
57, 69
navigation
on the web, 170
Netnames, 77
news
writing, 183
238 / How to Set Up a Freelance Writing Business
news wires
working for, 189
newspapers
writing for, 188
newsworthiness
in press reporting, 178
Nike, 128
No Logo
Naomi Klein, 128, 231
nouns
collective, 118
office space
leasing, 46
serviced, 48
sub-letting or sharing a lease, 47
online
media, writing ads for, 138
online work exchanges, 75
on-pack, 205
opinion pieces. see by-lined features
outdoor
media, writing ads for, 137
Outlook, 32
partnership
trading as a, 19
PC
versus Apple Mac, 29
pensions, 63
Periodical Publishers Association,
92, 230
phones and answer-phones, 38
photocopiers, 39
picture captions, 185, 201
pictures
in advertising, 133
in web publishing, 173
pitching, 81
pitching ideas
to press editors, 189
point-of-sale materials, 205
portfolio
putting together a, 80
posters, 204
PR
how it works, 192
presentations
writing for, 214
press
writing for, 177
press material, in PR
types of, 199
press packs, 200
press release
when not to write a, 199
writing a, 194
price negotiations, 83
print
writing ads for, 135
printers, 36
professional bodies, 88, 230
promotion
and advertising your business, 73
costs, 62
public relations
writing for, 191
Public Relations Consultants
Association, 88, 230
qualifications, 6
qualities
needed to run a copywriting business,
7
quotes, starting features with, 184
in press releases, 197
use of in press features, 185
radio
writing ads for, 137
readability
of copy, 101
receipts, 57
recruitment agencies, 79, 229
Regus, 48, 228
repairs
to office space, claiming, 59
repeat business
ensuring, 86
repetition, 121
resolution
of online images, 174
Index / 239
response rates
for direct mail, 140
typefaces
use of, 122
sales
and sales promotion, writing for, 203
sales people
working with, 207
scanners, 36
search engine listings
buying into, 78
search engines
promoting your site via, 77
security software, 33
self-motivation, 9
social networking sites, 35
software
for your business, 31
sole trader
trading as a, 19
spam, 147, 148, 149
specialising, 12
speech writing, 216
spiders, 78
stringers, 188
structure
of press features, 183
style and content
of press releases, 196
style guide
creating and maintaining a, 156
SWOT analysis, 212
tax returns, 26, 53, 55, 56, 67
filing your own, 68
technical documents
writing, 213
television
writing ads for, 136
timing
for setting up a business, 16
travel
costs, 62
TV ad
first in the UK, 4
UKPlus, 93
unions, 90
use of home as office, 42
USPs, 131, 132
VAT, 22, 23, 26, 54, 58, 62, 65, 69,
70, 71
vehicles, 62
virus protection, 33, 34, 228
Voice over IP, 34
web
copy considerations, 166
editing for the, 168
finding work on the, 74
web authoring software, 77, 229
web copy
basics, 166
webmail, 32, 228
website
promoting your business via a, 77
white papers, 206
wireless, 35
words
made up, 120
misused, 120
to watch out for, 122
to watch out for in web copywriting,
172
writing
outlets for, in PR, 192
writing to length, 187
Yahoo!, 32, 93
year
financial, 57
Zone Alarm, 33, 228